Text extracted via OCR from the original document. May contain errors from the scanning process.
a manual
of peace:
38 Steps towards
Enlightened Living
EFTA00286476
A Dhammakaya Foundation
Paperback First Edition 2005
Published by the Dhammakaya Foundation
Department of International Relations 23/2
Moo 7., Khlong Sam, Khlong Luang
Patumthani 12120 Thailand Tel. (+66 02)
524 0257-63
Copyright
2005 by the Dhammakaya Foundation
All Rights Reserved. No portion of this book may be reproduced,
stored in a retrieval system or transmitted, in any form or by any
means, electronic, mechanical, photocopying, recording or
otherwise, without the prior and express written consent of the
publisher
National Library of Thailand Cataloging in Publication Data
Dhammakaya Foundation A Manual of Peace: 38 Steps
towards Enlightened Living Bangkok: Dhammakaya
Foundation, 2005 466p.
1. Buddhism
I. Title
294.315
ISBN 974-93135-5-0
Printed in Thailand by : Craftsman Press
Co.,Ltd 487/42 Soi Wattanasilp,
Rajprarop Road, Makkasan, Rajthevee,
Bangkok, Thailand Tel: +66-2-2533009,
2533298
EFTA00286477
May the meritorious fruits accruing from the study of this
book be dedicated for the benefit of George, Annie, Alice,
Lilian, Richard, Harry, Alfred George, Arthur, Norman, Ivan
(née Lee) & Evelyn Ayre, Ellen Mary Stokell, Hannah Can;
George & Charles F. Lee, Elizabeth, John & Margaret Curry,
Anne Fen wick, Annie Jarman, Dennis George, Dennis Arthur
& Malcolm Woods, Emily Maly Casbon, William Jabez &
Ethel Dawes, Moses Edmund, Gladys, Hilda, Cecil, Reginald
and Marie Heaton wherever they have been reborn.
EFTA00286478
EFTA00286479
Contents
Preface to the First Edition
7
The Manual of Peace in Action
10
Abbreviations
18
Orientation
19
25
1. Not Associating with Fools
2. Associating with the Wise
3. Expressing Respect to those worth of respect
27
37
51
65
4. Living in an Amenable Location
67
5. Having done Good Deeds in one's past
77
6. Setting Oneself up properly in life
91
101
7. Artfulness in Knowledge
103
S. Artfulness in Application
113
9. Artfulness in Usage
119
10. Artfulness in Speech
131
139
II. Cherishing our parents
141
12. Raising our children
153
13. Cherishing our husband or wife
165
14. Not Leaving one's work undone
177
183
15. Generosity
185
16. Dhamma Practice
197
17. Looking after one's extended family
205
IS. Blameless Work
213
EFTA00286480
19. Abstaining from Unwholesomeness
20. Restraint from Drinking Intoxicants
21. Non-recklessness in the Dhamma
225
233
243
223
251
22. Respect
253
23. Humility
261
24. Contentment
269
25. Gratitude
281
26. Listening Regularly to Dhamma Teachings
291
.301
27. Patience
303
28. Openness to Criticism
311
29. The Sight of a True Monk
321
30. Regular Discussion of the Dhamma
331
.345
31. The Practice of Austerities
347
32. Practising the Brahma-Faring
357
33. Seeing the Four Noble Truths
371
34. The Attainment of Nirvana
385
35. A Mind Invulnerable to Worldly Wa litag NTS
393
395
36. Sorrowlessness
403
37. Freedom from Subtle Defilements
411
38. The Blissful Mind
421
INDICES
I. General Index
425
II. Pali Index
449
III. Index of Similes
454
IV. Index of Illustrated Examples
456
EFTA00286481
Preface to the First Edition
How this book should be used
I
Doing that virtue so regularly that it becomes our
Most problems in the world can be traced back to the habit
habits of the people inhabiting the world — the things 2
train up the people around you to practise the
we do, say and think until having become used to it. thirty-eight blessings as their habits. The important
These habits can either be good or bad. Supposing you conclusion we get from this three-stage process of
have good habits, the sort of things which you do, say acquiring the thirty-eight blessings of life is that we
and think again and again will be the things that bring need to look deeply at ourselves to see how many of
you happiness in life — especially the habit of being the virtues we have accrued for ourselves first. We
responsible for human dignity on a personal level, should regard ourselves as still in our infancy as far as
human dignity of others in society and responsibility for the spiritual teachings go, and make the appropriate
fair economics. All the thirty-eight virtues discussed in adjustments. Only when we've mastered ourselves can
this Manual of Peace need to become our habits if they we have something to offer to the world, to reach out to
are to be of any use to us — simply to know `about' the others as a good friend to build up a network of virtue
virtues is of no use to us. The aim in studying this
Manual for students of all levels should be to in society.
incorporate the virtues as their habits following the Sources used for this book
following four stage plan:
This book draws primarily on translated transcripts of
eighty hours of lectures entitled Monkol Jivit given by
in the short term to learn rules and regulations thaihe Most Ven. Phrabhavanaviriyakhun (Luang Phaw
protect us from behaviours contrary to the virtues of the
Dattajeevo), acting abbot of Dhammakaya Temple in
blessings;
Thailand in the mid-seventies to those of undergraduate
2
in the medium term to educate ourselves accordinggte The beauty of this lecture series was abundant use
the information on each blessing in the text to get answers Br examples from the Buddhist scriptures and also from
three questions about the virtue, namely:
his own life experiences. A second major source used
for this book, which was supposed to summarize
materials from the first source into a short book
•
`what' they are (concept and definition);
•
`why' the Buddha taught them (why a particalignated for schoolchildren to do revision for their
Path of Progress Ethics Quiz Contest was Ven. Maha
behaviour was either prohibited or advocated) and;
•
in eve
`how' they can be put into practice
. Somchai Thanavuddho's Monkol Jivit: Path of
ry
life
Progress edition (1982). This latter gives no exam-
EFTA00286482
pies, but offers a more structured version of the
Mangala Sutta materials, simplified in a way Asian
people can understand.
This text misses nothing of the core content of either
these two sources. However, after teaching these
materials to a group of western Buddhist newcomers in
Belgium, there were still many questions in the
audience's minds left unresolved. Things like respect
and gratitude don't come as second nature to
westerners. Not drinking alcohol requires more than a
fleeting explanation in a western culture. The long lists
of meritorious fruits of various virtues had to be
replaced as far as possible by `why' rationale and where
possible examples of the damage which can happen
when certain virtues are neglected. The Most Ven.
Phrabhavanaviriyakhun's Kamphi Gu Wikrit Chart
(2000) helped to illustrate many social ills from the
neglect of the Six Directions in this respect. Ven. Maha
Dr. Somchai Thanavuddho's Nippon hen atta rear
anatta
(1999)
almost
completely
replaces
the
explanation of Nirvana originally given in Blessing
Thirty-four. Also some of the illustrative examples have
been
replaced
if
repeated.
Some
have
been
supplemented by western anecdotes. Where sets of
Dhamma headings are repeated, they are usually
described in MI at the first appearance and
cross-referenced in subsequent appearances. Finally,
wherever possible, illustrative examples and Dhamma
headings have been traced back to their scriptural
reference in the PTS Pali Buddhist Scriptures to allow
students to cross-reference to other mainstream and
academic Buddhist works. In finding the references and
fuller illustrative examples, heavy use was made of
Ven. Paiboon Dhammavipulo's Dachanee Thamm
Chabab Monkola Soot (1997, 2000, 2002). The
resulting version of the Manual of Peace, dubbed the
theatsheet version' in its homepage form has been
better received by western audiences, has had a good
web readership and is currently being translated into
other western languages
Who should use this book
This book discusses key practical virtues in a sequential
path of Buddhist practice. As such it offers more than
just a dry, theoretical approach to Buddhist study, but
can actually form the basis of
subjective practice by students. The level of difficulty
of this book is designed for:
• students of Buddhist studies in the upper secondary.
In the U.K. curriculum this book would be suitable for
students studying at Key Stages 4
+ 5. In Scotland, for Scottish Levels SG + HS. Al-
though study of Buddhism at Key Stage 4 is
time-limited, use of the index can help students to
look in depth on selected aspects of the agreed sylla-
bus. At Key Stage 5, the text can be used for re-
search on project work.
students of Buddhist Studies or Comparative
Religion at Bachelors' or Masters' level of university.
•
• This book is useful supplementary reading for the
GB102 course of the Dhammakaya Open University.
• overseas students of the Path of Progress Ethics Quiz
Contest
•
Buddhists or those interested in Buddhism
wishing to supplement or consolidate their knowledge
of lifestyle-related Buddhist teachings
What does it offer to lecturers teaching these courses?
Lecturers will find this book has a good range of
illustrative examples and metaphors to support their
teachings or assemblies. Scriptural references are given
for nearly every example.
Student learning features
In each chapter:
Definitions
Links to other chapters
References At the end of
each chapter:
Metaphors
Illustrative
Examples At
the end of the
buofteral index
Pali index
index of similes
index of illustrative examples
EFTA00286483
Acknowledgements
The publication of this book was made possible only by
the special efforts of many staff and volunteers at the
Dhammakaya Foundation in Thailand. This includes
most importantly the source works in the Thai language
already mentioned by the Most Ven.
Phrabhavanaviriyakhun, Phra Maha Dr. Somchai
Thanavuddho and Phra Paiboon Dhammavipulo.
Thanks also to Phra Nicholas Thanissaro who has
translated, compiled and field tested this version of the
text in English. That
to Phra Jessadah Kittithano for help in tracking down
references, to Lalita Prasertnopakhun, Peungpit
Poopornanake & Chalom Srijarus (administrative
assistance), Anant Kittitawesin (cover design), the
Dhammakaya Foundation's still photography volunteers
(colour photography), Tassin-
Sipang-Pangbaramee-Pangboon Boontang,
Manop-Vararat-Dhitinand Kawmark, Suwachara
S.-Thanachapom Nishiyama & Sukultra-Sabrina Cants
(cover shoot).
EFTA00286484
The Manual of Peace in
Action
Education on inner peace in the style laid before us in this
Manual of Peace, is a must for humanity today. Modem day
education has many shortcomings as illustrated ironically by
the fact that the majority of today's disasters, come from
supposedly the best educated being on this planet — namely
the human being. The trouble with much of the curriculum
materials taught in schools nowadays is that they ignore the
concept of peace completely. The higher one goes in
education, the narrower one's knowledge becomes and the
further it becomes estranged from the concepts fundemental to
peace. Many of the violent acts committed in the world are
perpetrated by highly educated persons and often the victims
are those who have received little education.
Education for peace needs to start by imparting
awareness of the consequences of one's own actions to
young people — because every action, whether good or
bad, has an effect on the doer's life and others' lives as
well. One cannot afford to be complacent or
irresponsible about one's actions. This is why any form
of education which advocates certain actions by a
student has to have considerations of the peacefulness of
those actions built into it, in order to prevent the sort of
misdeeds done intentionally or unintentionally that upset
society.
The sort of education that provides awareness of peace
issues is known as `Inner Peace Education' (IPE). It is a
form of education that helps us know
ourselves better and know how to manage life properly.
As a result, it is the key success factor behind the world
peace that we are striving for.
Provision of IPE is not as straightforward as
conventional
curriculum
content.
However,
as
compared with usual spiritual provisions in school, it
has the advantage of not being based on belief or faith
— but rather experience and evidence. It is based on
practical knowledge. It's applied knowledge that offers
each person an individual approach to true happiness
regardless of race, nationality, religion, culture or
occupation. It is knowledge that can form a firm
foundation to any other form of academic knowledge to
guarantee that the applications of that knowledge are for
peace. It is self-education that you can start upon
anytime, anywhere (for as long as you are still a human
being!) — and can be practised throughout the day
alongside our regular daily activities in order to increase
our efficiency and effectiveness. It maximises the
efficiency of our time management, rather than being a
burden on our time — if a certain period of time each
day is allocated to it. It needs no formal classroom, and
demands no tuition fees either!
However, more than conventional education, it
demands time, concentration, perseverance, tolerance
and goodwill. These are qualities which are too easily
eroded away by materialism. It is only students who are
determined and motivated who can succeed in their
studies of IPE. IPE is not yet
EFTA00286485
of it are not
it is evaluated
icult to
for pioneering
of expertise in
pie who realize
.e and who are
)
2 obstacles that
e of peace and
bias which are
tnd religion —
can really start
Thus although
:mphasizes key
iffercnces. It is
every child's
idea of IPE is
be erased by
ild's character,
han emotional
a
sense of
rogress% Teachers =tot and dearest,
Teachers' round of the 'Path of P
become familiar with IPE materials & Issues before beingnment. To be
able to communicate peace values before being able 10:d into learning
communicate them effectively to their students.
715padailafast-have made no small contribution to peace in the world community — I
activities urviractict tit pacer. Dying tomtits
children too &MI
pil sApet &te sisal
apt?
micistaxithentaiiyndfaifehmenhe vibitalogrebtalfrigaiiiiceneoccs, celebratin
similarities an
omsysghualt
c cact roatjnrcisr pfiarisis c in life. become familiar with IPE materials ee issues before being able
ei
'
co communicate peace values before being abk to communicate
them effectively to their students.
Youngsters, parents and teachers alike like to participate
actively in peace education projects as participants and
organizers and also form an active network of peace
volunteers throughout Thailand down to the present
day, generation by generation through word-of-mouth.
It is important that before becoming organizers and
teachers of such programs that they first understand
peace and means of nonviolent conflict resolution
themselves — under this proviso, the organizers can
even be older children organizing activities for their
younger fellows.
During the history of the 'Path of Progress' Ethics Quiz
Contest, the scale of participation has grown from one
person to a small team then a larger and larger one.
Over the last thirty years, the lives of total of over
twenty million young people in
Thailand have been touched by the IPE curriculum
The main learning activity for implementing IPE
amongst young people is the so-called 'Path of
Progress' Ethics Quiz Contest which has been held
nationwide every year in Thailand since 1982. The aim
of the project is to bring children's ethical development
to higher levels resulting in positive behavioral changes
in a way that is relevant to those
EFTA00286486
Interreligious participation in the 'Path of Progress'.
Christians, Buddhists tt Moslems take the teachers round of
the 'Path of Progress' so that they can accurately pass on the
IPE concepts to their schoolchildren.
Interreligious participation in the 'Path of Progress'.
Christians, Buddhists & Moslems take the teachers' round of
the 'Path of Progress' so that they can accurately pass on the
IPE concepts to their schoolchildren.
of all nationalities, races and religions. The 'Path of
Progress' shares the same curriculum of the
Thirty-Eight Blessings of Life described in this Manual
of Peace. The number of participants started with 382 in
1982 and rose in 2002 to four million from 13,000
educational institutes — ranging from kindergartens,
universities, police and military colleges — students and
teachers alike from all over Thailand. The winners of the
contest receive plaques of distinction from H.M. the King
of Thailand and representatives of many international
organizations. Besides honorary plaques, winners are
granted scholarships and certificates for their success in
each category.
Case Histories of Schools Participating in the Path
of Progress IPE Scheme
Suteetorn Kindergarten, Nakorn Prathom, Thailand.
"We find that the teachings of the 'Path of
Progress' programme eminently suitable to the
curriculum at our school. The 'Path of Progress'
program helps students realize the value of
morality. Students can also adapt these morals to
practice in their daily lives. The Home of Peace
program (see p.16) focuses more on the practices of
the learners, so students can really practice
what they have learned. This is the reason why
both programs are so beneficial for our school. At
the beginning, we taught the Manual of Peace to small
groups of students. As years went by, more students got
interested, so we had to change the workshop format into
assemblies. We had such an assembly each day for the
students from first to sixth grade. Furthermore, our
school has many activities that are involved with morals
and ethics. For example, the school will let the students
meditate along to an audio cassette of meditation
instruction. The students usually attend Buddhist
services and practise meditation afterwards. Later, the
students have their own group discussions to analyze and
comment about how they can improve their virtues.
Kindergarten infants, do not join the assembly, but
they will have a homeroom teacher. Most of the time,
the teacher focuses on meditation practice. The
teaching for them makes heavier use of illustrations to
overcome their reading difficulties. Also, they seem
to enjoy looking at the pictures too. We once had a
boy named Pruchya. He had received an 'Olympic'
gold medal for winning a math contest. In all his
interviews, Pruchya said that he always wishes to be a
virtuous person rather than being merely a smart one.
From listening to his interview, it made us really
proud to see that he had lived up to our ideals of a
good student. In my opinion too, to be a virtuous
child is more important than to be an intelligent
one because at least virtuous people can co-exist
peacefully in the world. If a person is endowed
with self-discipline, they have the potential to
develop intelligence and have a successful future.
When the youth have morality in their hearts, they
can differentiate what is right or wrong. They have
awareness of the consequences of every action they
do. Therefore they perform good deeds for the
benefit of themselves, society and the world."
Headmistress
EFTA00286487
School Track Record:
to Grade 6 have•
3,800 high school students from Grade 7-12
Contest every yejoining the `Path of Progress' Ethics Quiz Contest every
year from 1983 to present;
school category for
first prize in the team category for seven years
running from 1993-9;
earn category for
first prize in the individual and team categories
for the 19th contest.
of Education as •
first prize in the secondary school team
dents'
category in 2002.
Thailand
`Path of
valuate the
'ng the
our students
ver, when I
, the Manual
y with
ter teaching
uddha's
teachings. I felt that 1 had become a better person
morally as well as spiritually. ' I think one of the
reasons has to do with the fact that I am teaching
Manual of Peace to the students. I mean, can you
imagine a person managing to teach Manual of Peace
without understanding moral or ethics themselves? I
couldn't be like that. So I felt like my attitude towards
life has completely changed because of this book. The
most rewarding thing I have witnessed is to be able to
transfer my knowledge about how to conduct good
deeds to my students. I try to put the basic teaching
from Manual of Peace into all of my mainstream
lessons." One single teacher's effort, inspired senior
students to organize a tutorial activity of peace for their
juniors. Finally it became the most popular club
amongst ow students."
Sompong Hunsadee: Coordinating Teacher
Recovery of a former drug-addict
"Ever since I was born, the person I remembered
seeing the most is my mother. She always taught me
to be a good person and to do good things to others
as well. Well, you may think I would probably turn
out to be just like
Qualified teachers instruct their students. Teachers need to
be role models of IPP.. and knowledgable of its concepts to
instil virtuous habits in their students.
EFTA00286488
Student 'Path of Progress' Examinations take place throughout Thailand. Each year more than four million students
throughout 'Thailand participate in the qualifying round of the 'Path of Progress' Ethics Quiz Contest at countless provincial
centres supeniscd by I BS volunteers.
other kids but it's not so.
It started when I was in high school. I had a big
argument with my teacher and therefore, I decided to
drop-out. I thought school was not necessary any
more. Instead of helping my mother, I started to go
out every night with my friends. I knew my mother
worried about me but I thought I could take care of
myself.
One night when I went to a friend 's house, one
night, he showed me a small pill that looked like a
painkiller. Curious and ignorant as I was, I decided
to have my first contact with drugs. After that, I
became addicted to drugs and had to steal money in
order to buy them daily. At last, I became the drug
dealer myself. At that time, I had no choice.
However, I was caught by police and was sent to a
juvenile court. My mother then bailed me out from
the juvenile prison. The first thing I
asked her was, "Why did you help me, Mom?" My
mother did not say much. Just the sight of tears in
her eyes had already killed me. All she said was, "I
love you. I can forgive and will always do so, son."
After that day, I decided to stop doing all the bad
things and avoided getting back into the vicious
circle again.
I decided to go back to school in order to avoid
probation. Though I knew that I didn't want to hurt
my mother's feelings any more, my subconscious
still tempted me to sell drugs to my classmates.
There was a big fight in my mind between the good
and bad sides. I did not know what to do.
Fortunately, when I was at the point of relapse, my
teacher persuaded me to join ethics quiz contest
called 'The Path of Progress'. At first, I saw no
point in participating in such a program. Then she
gave me a reference book
EFTA00286489
I
-.
-
yself for a
s!`A-
.
)ugh it.
mr
re
content the
; point of my
, my teachers,
ve way. I was
;. to choose
'self in and to
,ople.
attempted to
ad things. I
my mother in
other and I
at school and
in the various
t you' to the
ny life. They
. I will try to
L
:epic in my
pie who are
Interreligious participation in the 'Path of Progress'rot know how
Christians, Buddhists & Moslems take the teachers' round of
the 'Path of Progress' so that they can accurately pass on tete light at the
In concepts to their schoolchildren.
I ho ilia% day, the IBS is an umbrella organization of university students all over 1
who sacrifice thihetketil!WafiaatihteilticliVANVINATIor youth.IlibeictigurasvialicipsotheofrthhcdalirtatitArcImmialeork and devotion o
all-volunteer staff, many of whom are former participants in IBS activitia19104.1S ihttltnitraft Mo:tihalerltilitttlititSelSetiftirrgttft4O19. 5,000 activt
members in 2003. Most IBS activities are based on the concept of promagiathRfecaUeheloikEcY can accurately pass on the
Mr. Visarut Komkaew Bang
wirconcepts to their schoolchildren.
Luang Vithaya High School
Dhammakaya Foundation — a United
Nakorn Pathom, Thailand
Nations-accredited Non-Governmental Organization
This is the true testimony written by one participant of
the Path of Progress Ethics Quiz Contest. After
receiving this letter in 2000, the IBS interviewed him
when he was in Grade 12 and had been elected as
president of the student committee.
The main coordinator of IPE in Thailand is the
International Buddhist Society (IBS). IBS was
established by a 1960 Alumni of Kasetsart University,
Bangkok. After graduation, he took ordination as a
Buddhist monk. At present, he is the Most Venerable
Phrarajabhavanavisudh (Chaiboon Dhammajayo),
President of the
(NGO) associated with the Department of Public
Information (DPI). The founder's compassionate
mission in setting up the IBS was to further public
awareness of ethical issues, particularly in the youth.
EFTA00286490
Thai royalty a International organizations award
plaques. Whiners of 'Path of Progress' championships in
the various categories receive plaques and scholarships from
the King of Thailand and numerous international
organizations.
IBS has become
through a variety of peace education programs in Thai society.
IBS ACTIVITIES
IBS activities are divided into two major levels — the
elementary and the advanced.
On the elementary level, it aims to instill the normal inner
peace core values in a child's mind. In order to prepare them
for more advanced levels of study when they grow up. Such
standards will translate into a child's behaviours and become
his own second nature. It's a self- generated rather than an
imposed discipline. That's why IPE has long tenn beneficial
effects on its students. On the advanced level, meditation by
students consolidates the process of IPE in the long run.
Meditation is a good catalyst, because it helps youth see and
understand themselves better, know their own needs and serve
those needs in a more productive way. The IBS see IPE as
lifelong education.
The main learning activities at the elementary level,
used by the IBS is the 'Path of Progress' Ethics Quiz
Contest' and the Home of Peace' (HOP).
These two projects have about 4 million students
participating annually throughout Thailand and receive
cooperation from 13,000 schools and educational
institutions.
The 'Path of Progress' provides students with a peace manual
for students to study as an extracurricular activity and an
annual contest to compete in. Winners in each category
receive honorific plaques, certificates and scholarships to
motivate and stimulate their interest. By reading the Manual
of Peace different topics will capture each student's
imagination according to their disposition. It will guide them
to see the good and bad sides of their own character and
motivate them to want to improve themselves become more
productive. They transform by means of internally derived
discipline, rather than discipline needing to be imposed from
94iler ThsfrFilmitvytiiilfi EffeelbiblifflitsalAciffenitile in promoting
more responsible person.
The 'Path of Progress' is complemented by a second
project called the 'Home of Peace' — especially to
supplement younger childrens' understanding of peace
— to see if they differentiate peace and non-peace in
their daily lives. The project provides a 'diary of peace'
for the children to write down their own good deeds and
good deeds done toward their parents, teachers and
extended family. Since any deeds done every day can
become habits, the IBS seeks to value to overlook a
child's seemingly insignificant good deeds because
these might be the root cause of their success in the
future. Every child tends to have his or her own hero. If
their hero is a worthy role model, it will inspire them to
become a virtuous global citizen. On the contrary, with a
negative role model, they can become public enemy
no. 1. In this respect, adults play an important role in
presenting a model of peace to the young people around
them. By reading, writing and practising peace every
day, with the co-operation of parents and school, IPE
will eventually become a child's second nature allowing
them to respond to every situation by peaceful means.
For young people who show their readiness to
EFTA00286491
learn at the advanced level, there are a father three
study and practice spiritual values incorporated into their
projects:
daily routine to make sure that improved habits are
•
Leadership Training Program: this scheme attracts properly instilled and that those habits will survive the
young people by providing advanced IPE training in
transfer back to daily life when they return to their
personality enhancement, public speaking, meditation and
everyday life.
social affirmation — and it is these young people who go on
to become `supervisor' volunteers who organize the 'Path of Ladies, Dhammadayada Training Scheme: the
Progress' throughout Thailand annually.
Ladies version of the Dhammadayada training is as
•
Dhammadayada Ordination Scheme: During theintensive in IPE concepts as that of the gentlement, but
Ordination Scheme, the IPE used includes Buddhist teachiM 'riciparits are not required to ordain as nuns.
made relevant to the needs of young men in Thai society. This
activity is rooted in the Thai tradition that when a man reaches
the age of twenty he should take temporary ordination as aAt the advanced level, IPE projects seek to train
Buddhist monk for a period to learn spiritual values first heersitY students who can act as organizers of IPE
This course comprises two months of intense study of IPE Project managers themselves. It is because of the
Participants
trainees of these sort of courses that the IBS has
managed to run activities such as the 'Path of Progress'
continuously now for more than twenty years. The
unifying feature of the advanced projects for IPE is an
increased emphasis on meditation.
EFTA00286492
Abbreviations
A. Alguttara NikAya (PTS Edition) AA. ManorathaptraAE Alguttara NikAya
Commentary (PTS Edition) Ap. ApadAna (PTS Edition)
D. DEgha NikAya (PTS Edition) DA. Sumaigala VilAsinE - DEgha NikAya
Commentary (PTS Edition) Dh. Dhammapada (PTS Edition) DhA. Dhammapada
Commentary (PTS Edition) DhSA. AtthasAlinE DhammasalgaAE Commentary (PTS
Edition) It. Itivuttaka (PTS Edition)
J. JAtaka (PTS Edition) KhpA. KhuddakapAEha Commentary
(PTS Edition)
M. Majjhima NikAya (PTS Edition) MA. Papatica StdanE - Majjhima NikAya
Commentary (PTS Edition) MT. MahAvaOsa-TEkA
Milindapailha (PTS Edition)
MNidA. MahA Niddesa Commentary (PTS Edition) Nd
MahA Niddesa (PTS Edition)
2
[gala Niddesa (PTS Edition)
Nd'A. CEla Niddesa Commentary (PTS Edition)
PsA. PaEisambhidAmagga Commentary (PTS Edition)
PTS Pali Text Society of London
S. SaOyutta NikAya (PTS Edition) SA. SAratthappakAsinE - SaOyutta NikAya
Commentary (PTS Edition) SadS. Saddhammasalgaha (P.T.S. Journal 1890) SN. Sutta
NipAta (PTS Edition) SNA. Sutta NipAta Commentary (PTS Edition) ThagA.
TherAgathA Commentary (PTS Edition) Ud. UdAna (PTS Edition) Vbh. Vibhanga (PTS
Edition) Vin. Vinaya (PTS Edition) Vism. Visuddhimagga (PTS Edition) Vv.
VimAnavatthu (PTS Edition) VvA. VimAnavatthu Commentary (PTS Edition)
EFTA00286493
Orientation
A. INTRODUCTION
Welcome to the Manual of Peace. This orientation
deals with the principles of ethical study and the value
of the Thirty-Eight Blessings contained in this manual.
The Manual of Peace contains subject matter which is
not difficult — indeed it is very popular in Thailand
especially amongst school children where over
4,000,000 annually take examinations in it. In schools
where vocational subjects rob the curriculum of more
and more time previously dedicated for spiritual
studies, the Thirty-Eight Blessings have been forming
an extra-curricular recompense in spiritual studies for
children in Thailand since 1982.
A.1 Why mud). spiritual knowledge ?
The first question that comes to mind for many people
studying this book is to ask why academic or material
knowledge is not sufficient to get by in the world. If a
full stomach and a place to sleep were enough to keep
the human happy then we wouldn't have to go to the
trouble of studying about ethics or about spirituality.
However, for every human being, there is something
deeper inside us which is always searching for the
answers to questions on a deeper level — something
which seeks for purpose and meaning in the life we live
and the world around us. If supporting yourself were all
there was to life then certainly millionnaires would be
the happiest people on earth. Unfortunately wealth can
only buy physical comfort — money cannot buy
the means to nurture or nourish the mind. For all our
qualifications and diplomas we might have, none of
them can guarantee us against hunger of the mind. On
the contrary, the irresponsible people may use their
cunning to do more heinous crimes than they would do
if they weren't educated. Thus worldly education
cannot guarantee us a happy life or guarantee that we
will not end up in jail. This is why we make the
distinction between worldly and spiritual knowledge —
because spiritual knowledge properly studied can
guarantee that we will not be put in jail — it is not only
something to fill up our brains — it has transformative
power to upgrade the way we think, speak and act.
In the ideal world, our system of education would give
us the answers we need to the questions inside
ourselves, but in practice, the secular education doesn't
manage to fill this gap — and maybe, even if it were to
try, it could not — because in some way the personal
quest
is
part of the
process of acquiring
knowledge.Thus we are forced to look for the answers
from alternative sources.
A.2 Fashion and Universal Values
Many things can affect our spiritual progress. Some-
times it can be people, objects, attitudes, situations or
experiences we come across in the world. However, for
most things, the worth or uselessness of an experience
is just a matter of opinion. Are there things then that
have a universally uplifting effect on people's lives —
that are more than just a mat-
EFTA00286494
ter of opinion?
Take present day trademarks which are accepted as status
symbols by everyone as an example — Mercedes, Adidas —
really such companies should pay us to advertise their products,
but on the contrary we pay more for a T-shirt with the trademark
for the privilege of associating ourselves with the trademark. Why
should this be? We feel that associating ourselves with such a
symbol somehow improves our own worth. Sometimes we feel
that the worth of these things is unchanging, but in fact from age
to age these values change according to fashion. In times gone by,
people thought in the same way. but they didn't call these things
'brand marketing'. or 'trademarks, they called them 'lucky
charms' — but again they liked to associate with them as a way
of improving their worth or fostering progress in their lives. We
still have lucky charms in the present day — things like lucky
horseshoes or four-leaf clovers, but their role is diminished if
compared to olden times. In olden times the role of charms was
much more significant.
Systems of spiritual knowledge are attempts by men to
model the values of the world in a way according to
unchanging universal values — ways to recognize the
things that improve our worth in ways that are eternal
and don't differ from person to person. Many bodies of
knowledge exist in the world to help us in this respect.
They differ in their degree of comprehensiveness. The
ideal body of knowledge for us to leant from would
perhaps be one with the following characteristics:
Facilitating Practical Outlook giving a clear place
to start with problems — not just theory or philosophy;
•
Transcending Values allowing us to rise above
mundane and petty values;
•
Highlighting Opposites giving us clear "curses" to
avoid as well as positive things to aim for.
There are many systems of spiritual values which fall
short of these criteria. Some systems lead to spiritual
exclusivity and even wars against those of other beliefs
which are values no longer suitable for an age of
globalization and tolerance. Some systems lead their
practitioner to shut themselves away from the world and
to ignore social problems. Some systems confine
themselves to their own culture or language.
B.1 Historical Origins of the Manual of Peace
The Blessings of Life which make up the Manual of
Peace are interesting because they seem to answer to all
the characteristics specified above. They grew up in
response to just the same type of debate over universal
values mentioned in the introduction. In fact, even from
ancient times, men had values — but at a certain time in
the past 2,500 years ago in India a group of people
started to wonder whether there was anything deeper
behind the fashions — were there symbols of worth that
transcended fashion? What sort of charms could
possibly allow one to live without obstacles'.
Supposing one wanted wealth, honour, praise and
happiness, how could one ensure that one received just
Progressive & Sequential something which leadsthat? There was such a debate ensuing from this
you step by step from simple to more complex;
question, over which everybody seemed to have a
Self-Catalysing creating its own motivation and different point of view. To generalize the debators
enthusiasm to pursue it as you go along;
divided themselves into three main camps:
•
Exhaustive being applicable to all aspects of life;
•
Holistic perhaps dealing with problems not just by
symptoms but in their entirety;
•
Multi-level working on personal, interpersonal,
family, social and global levels equally well;
•
Non-discriminatory being equally applicable to
those of all cultures;
•
Multi-Factorial being able to deal not just with
simple problems but with those with many contributing
factors;
The first group believed that the thing to make one's life
a blessing was to see something that was `pleasing'.
2.
The second group believed that the thing to make one's
life a blessing was to hear something that was 'pleasing'.
3.
The third group believed that the thing to make one's life
a blessing was the mood in the mind
EFTA00286495
which arose whenever you saw or heard something
that was 'pleasing'.
Each group disagreed with the others because it was obvious
that an image pleasant to one person may not be pleasant to
another. A sound pleasant to one person might not be pleasant
to another. Something that creates a pleasant mood today
might cause an unpleasant mood tomorrow. Thus there is
nothing to make anything discussed a 'blessing' without
doubt. The debate went on and on without any sign of coming
to an end. It is just like people in the present day can still not
agree as to what is truly a 'lucky charm'.
Eventually the problem was only resolved by taking
audience with the Buddha. A representative asked the
Buddha the nature of blessings and his reply is what is
now know as the Mangala Sutta
— thirty-eight blessings divided into ten groupings.
R2 Definitions: The Word `Blessings'
Some may still wonder about the meaning of the word
'blessing' [ma]gala]. Some people think a blessing must
be an object or an action — but by ow technical
understanding of the word, we translate it as 'a cause of
prosperity, progress and happiness'. If you want to
know the definition, you could say that the progress
towards happiness that a `maigala' will bring is
four-fold:
B.3 Principles of Ethical Learning
A working computer has two important parts: hardware
and software. The hardware of the computer is the
wiring and the circuitry. The software is the
programming that we install on the computer. The
hardware of a computer is neutral, but what makes the
difference between a beneficial and a degrading
computer is the type of software installed. If you install
working programs, the computer can be useful.
However if you install violent games, viruses or
pornography then the computer becomes a source of
degradation. The worth of the computer thus depends
on the software.
A drinking glass is also neutral. What makes the
difference between a beneficial and a degrading glass is
the sort of drink you put in it. If you put a nourishing
drink in the glass such as milk then the glass will be an
uplifting one welcomed by every
I.
progress through acquired wealth (worldly treasure,
heavenly treasure and the treasure of Nirvana).
2.
progress through wisdom, which is the means by which
obstacles in life and evil are abated.
3.
progress through virtue through the channels of body,
speech and mind, at the basic, intermediate and advanced
levels
4.
progress through the three benefits: benefit in this
lifetime, the next lifetime and in the hereafter.
A blessing is a sign that positive development is about
to take place (to a person, society or the world). Unlike
such principles as that of deserved fate, the logic of
blessings is fonvard looking, signifying that something
good is about to happen.
EFTA00286496
the blood, bones, muscles and organs accnriated with
the physical body — even the brain, which is a physical
organ. By mind, we mean the knowledge and attitudes
that constitute ow consciousness. The mind is like "the
ghost in the machine". The physical components of the
human being are also neutral. The difference between a
human who is uplifting and one who is degrading
depends not on the body, but on the mental component.
Unfortunately, the software of the human mind is not
pre-installed from the factory! When we are born we
are born along with an ignorance about all aspects of
life. From the time we are children, we spend ow life
learning in order to fill the gap in our knowledge — to
provide ourselves with the knowledge we need for life.
The path of our subsequent destiny depends on the sort
of knowledge we fill ourselves with. We can fill
ourselves with either:
one. However, if you put alcohol or poison in the glass,
then the glass is immediately eyed with sus-picion. The
worth of a drinking glass thus depends on its content.
In the same way, a human being has two impor-tant
parts: body and mind. By body we mean all
EFTA00286497
!Iran bangs ae tom led* kratlex*
Comm -Heide.. 4 Dzilvare
14..."~ • Mei • AIM
Ins/Sing Strae ha ccmFular
aging lowai•Ird: te nt4
I
363113101704031) » 'prvangpttsor
wAng prognms > > Ssc e6:11 compiler
num an )» tEnehaS 911SS a CV*
1
-rurAraia mcww9o»> 3vong paw
clarinn9 Plogard
&gad% cairn
pawl)» Gnat° 9018 01 dant
•
Coal tango; En•ronmest
I
Hya Undirtanlic
ROI Deccorrnaktg
Ri/l4cati
fbritActon
EFTA00286498
even of following thefts/ blessing — what more will
be the benefit of practising all of the blessings in their
entirety. The benefits will be not only to ourself, but to
society and to the world as well.
The second group (see p.65) concerns consolidating upon
the goodness of the discretion you already have through
the environment which we inhabit, from the habits we
have built up for ourselves in the past and by setting a
proper aim in life. This style of teaching is characteristic
of the Buddha who taught virtue in a way that becomes
successively more complex.
The third group (p.139) concerns how we can make a
contribution to society by our skilfulness, so that we
ourself do not become a burden on society and can at the
same time be a refuge to ourself in terms of earning our
living.
The fourth group (p.139) progresses from being able to
help ourselves to being able to help other people as well.
accurate knowledge: positive knowledge which is The first people who we must help are those to whom we
creative and uplifting for ourselves and others, or;
are indebted: our parents. If we have new people to whom
•
inaccurate knowledge: negative knowledge (comWe owe our efforts towards virtue, such as our children
parable to lies to the soul) which is harmful to ourselves ared our spouse. Furthermore, we have to be able to divide
others.
our time so that neither our responsibilities in the work
and in the home are neglected.
Our knowledge increases as a result of influences in ow
surroundings. The first and most fundamental influence
on our learning is the sort of people that make up ow
environment. The second most important influence is
the environment in general. Together, these two
influences have the potential to instil us with Right
View about the world (effectively our core values and
assumptions about the world and our attitude to it).
The first group (see p.25) which concerns the acqui-
sition of discretion concerns our understanding of what
is wrong and what is right. Even if someone is
knowledgable,if their discretion is faulty, their future is
unlikely to be bright. On the contrary those with good
discretion but who lack education, at least they will not
become a burden on society. It is the basis of Right
View [sammA diEEhi]. Simply avoiding associating
with fools will bring us wealth, because we have no
risk of spoiling our reputation, our wisdom is also not
at risk and may be improved — virtue of all sorts will
start to flow in ow direction. This is the result
The fifth group (p.183) builds on the strength of virtue we
have built up for ourselves in the home, expanding the scope
of our virtue wider into societywith generosity, public works.
If you have already got your life under control, you will be
able to do something for the benefit of society with some sort
of efficiency. Those who try to help social works when they
have not yet got their own personal affairs under control, may
create disasters rather than helping others. Those who want to
give advice to others but who are unable to speak politely,
may make enemies instead of improving the quality of
society.
Higher groups of blessings deal with the more subtle
aspects of training the qualities of the mind in purity.
B.4 38 Blessings as an ethical system
We find that the Manual of Peace lives up to the de-
mands of an ethical system as follows: 1Progressive
Sequential: The thirty-eight bless
ings are arranged according to the degree of dif
EFTA00286499
ficulty in practice: the easier ones come before the
harder ones. The sequence of blessings begins with
external practices, i.e., dealing with gross social
behaviours but gradually leading up to the more
internal and subtle ones. Following these sets of
virtues gives one an impression of climbing up a
flight of stairs leading to salvation. If you don't
associate with the society of the fools, then you
enhance the process of associating with the wise.
When you are dealing with the first Blessing, you are
creating conditions to fulfill the second one. One can
say that at the same time you respect those who are
worthy of respect. It starts with number one. While
you are working to develop number one, it is already
doing the groundwork for number two and number
three — it's progressive. One blessing conditions the
next progressively. By doing the first Blessing, you
are committing yourself to many subsequent
Blessings thereby. By associating with the wise, it is
opening you up to many good things; you learn from
the wise, you progress — all good things come from
associating with other people. So, by practicing one
Blessing, it will eventually lead to practicing all of
the Blessings. And by doing one, you prepare for the
other; they are inter-related. This logic is very
beautiful, it leads you ownwards step-bystep. It
allows you to improve, socially and spiritually, hand
in hand with each other. It is like a self-catalysing
process in chemistry or a positive feedback process
in physics. This makes salvation via the thirty-eight
blessings a kind of upward spiral, where you move
upwards to Nirvana, the highest goal in Buddhist
spiritual cultivation, starting from the simplest
blessings, and gradually perfecting yourself.
2
Self-Catalysing: When one kind of living bless-
ing comes into existence or is practiced, it will support
other kinds of virtues to manifest themselves, and the
manifestation of any one blessing will lead to development
of the next higher blessing in the sequence.
3
Erhaustive: Other mechanisms of spiritual
values can easily be accommodated within it.
4
Holistic: Blessings assume the presence of a
deeper unseen network of causes and effects which
interact together in cycles of positive feedback for
the ethical development of society. Blessings can be
used as a non-subjective socio-ethical checklist, that
cuts through self-centred ness that might otherwise
lead to superficial social changes (an individual's
prosperity, for example, being misunderstood as a
sign of social development) because social
development that is unethical is by this philosophy, a
contradiction in terms. It also provides a holistic
mirror to view one's own personality and
development.
5
Multi-level: It covers the full spectrum of human
relations from the interpersonal, through the familial,
occupational and communal levels to the social. It offers a
holistic perspective of a world governed by interrelating
conditions.
6
Non-discriminatory: This philosophy makes
no distinction between men and women, lay practice
and monastic practice. The set of virtues is not
restricted to a particular sort of person or society, but it
can be treated as the common good that is shared in a
particular community or even by the whole of mankind.
7
Multi-Factorial: The Thirty-Eight blessings
are a means-ends model of ethics. The ethics of the
Blessings escapes the rigid linear dimension of 'means'
and 'cnds' in favour of a multi-factorial causality
model. The weakness of consideration in terms of
'means' and ends' is seen when trying to establish
definitions in a complex multifactorial situation. With
the lighting of a match, for example, can we say that the
match is the means to the production of fire? Are not
oxygen, friction and a striking surface also means to the
production of fire? If the friction is not sufficient to
cause ignition, can it still be considered a means? Is a
match struck in a vacuum still a means? Is not Oxygen
also an end for the process of photosynthesis too? ...
but simultaneously the means for ignition? How would
linear ethics tackle the problem of 'auto-catalytic'
phenomena (better known as vicious circles). If defini-
tions of means and end are so difficult to pin-down in
such a simple scientific situation, it is hardly surprising
that ethics based on 'means'
EFTA00286500
and 'ends' are virtually impossible to apply in
multi-factorial social scenarios. Unfortunately, the
problems found in society are almost always the
vicious circles that make application of ethics so
difficult. To the question of whether blessings are
'means' or 'ends', it must be answered that they are
both. Putting any one of the thirty-eight blessings
into action will contribute towards social
development At the same time, the existence (or
coming into existence) of any of the thirty-eight
blessings is itself an indicator of social progress.
Blessings also help to avoid the dilemma of
justifying unwholesome means by wholesome ends.
8
Facilitating Practical Outlook: The practice
of blessings are effective through reversal of positive
feedback loops of decay through the setting in motion
of positive feedback loops of development: firstly, to
check the downward spiral and, secondly, to turn the
spiral upwards. Action for social problem solving can
start by the effort to replace any one of the thirty-eight
counterparts of the blessings by a blessing. Problem
solving can start with the local application of any bless-
ing. The blessings encourage personal commitment
instead of passing the buck. Once the first blessing
comes into being, then it will cause an upturn in
society, which will ease the accumulation of the next
blessing in the sequence. The end-point, said to be the
biggest blessing of them all, is to bring all thirty-eight
blessings into being in society.
9Transeending Values: The Manual of Peace does not focus
merely on the values of action based on moral principles or
intention for the actions, but rather on the modes of our
relationships in society, environment, family relations,
education, communication and spirituality. Yet, the scope of
application of blessings can even expand to cover the whole
of the human race, with all lives sharing their pan in the
single commonwealth of morality—the Global Community.
10 Highlighting Opposites: Blessings also reveal the
flipside of blessings — the 'Bad Omen' or 'social
curse', which are the sign that something bad is about
to happen (omens of forthcoming decay). Where there
is no development, there must be decay, and to this end
the opposites of the thirty-eight blessings are
representedby a set of thirty-eight identifiers, like
tips-of-the-iceberg, which signal thepresence of a nest
of much deeper-rooted but invisible social problems.
The nature of such problems is, again, that of negative
feedback loops or 'vicious cycles' which lead toward
decay. Unsolved, such curse will spread, into ever
broadening circles of repercussions with their own
vicious cycles. A comparable example in science might
be the thermodynamic model of loss of entropy through
the dissipation of heat.
These are characteristics of the Manual of Peace. In the
chapters that follow, each of the thirty-eight Blessings
of Life will be explained in turn.
EFTA00286501
The First
Group of Blessings
"Turning your back on unwholesomeness"
Goodness doesn't come unpackaged. It comes as part and parcel of
the person who does good deeds and and who exemplifies those
good deeds. Goodness is transmitted between people by the exam-
ple a good person sets for others and by a good person's teaching
and criticism of the behaviour of a person whose level of goodness
is lesser. Goodness is like the food which we eat. It strongly influ-
ences of our view and understanding of life and the world.To begin
with we have no idea what goodness is. Some people tell us that
such and such a thing is good. Others tell us that something com-
pletely different is good. Who should we believe? And when we
ask them why they consider such and such a thing to be good, no-
one seems to know the answer. Thus if we want to learn how to do
good deeds, we have to start making decisions about our lives even
from the time we are still unable to tell the difference between good
and evil. Although we cannot tell the difference between good and
evil, there are certain indicators that allow us to tell the difference
between people who habitually do good and people who habitu-
ally do evil. The first step on this path is the identification of the
people who habitually do evil and we make our first step towards
goodness by avoiding such people. Our next step towards good-
ness is to associate with people who are habitually good. The third
step is to honour those who are habitually good so that we can start
to observe the faults in ourselves, by comparison with the higher
virtue of those who are worthy of respect. Thus, the first group of
blessings is thus almost entirely concerned with being selective
about our friends.
EFTA00286502
Blessing One: Not Associating
with Fools
A. INTRODUCTION
A.1 First Step on Journey the Most Important
For the Manual of Peace, although all of the blessings
are important, all of the latter thirty-seven hinge on the
first. Thus you could say that of all the blessings the
first is the most important. It is like the first tread of the
steps leading into a house. If you cannot climb this first
step, you will spend the rest of your life at the foot of
the staircase with no way of getting into the house. You
can also think of this blessing "Not Associating with
Fools" as being like the first step on a long journey,
without which the voyage can never begin.
criminal doesn't particularly want to live his life
dishonestly, but he thinks that being a criminal is good
enough. Although everyone seeks success (in their
various ways), in the long run they may be left with
regrets in their mind. If you ask why a difference of
definition of success in life can make such a difference
to one's destiny, it is because this "common sense"
about the world dictates the decisions we make about
the world — and these decisions drive all that we say
and do. In the Manual of Peace we call such common
sense "discretion" — it is the basic understanding by
which we judge each experience and situation in the
world to know whether it is likely to be beneficial for
us or harmful.
B.1 The importance of calibrating discretion
No-one wants to make a mess of their lives. Everyone
wants to feel that they are profiting from the years that
pass them by — to give them a sense of success and
achievement in their lives. However, the way each
person defines "success", "profit" or achievement in
their life will dictate what they channel their efforts
into. A businessman defines profit in life in monetary
terms so he devotes his time and effort into earning as
much as he can. A criminal might define achievement
in life by "cracking the most impenetrable safe in the
world" or "cutting the most corners possible" to
maximise the amount of stolen goods he can a mass —
so he spends all his waking hours planning his next
robbery. A
B.2 Discretion doesn't come unpackaged
Discretion is a personal quality we acquire, test and
calibrate as a result of the experiences we meet in life.
It is not a quality we can get by reading about it, buying
it, downloading it or memorizing it. It can only come as
the result of ow transactions with real people. It is a
quality often unspoken, but easily learned by example.
Thus discretion doesn't come loose, but is part and
parcel of the exemplary people who possess it.
B.3 Two Formative Influences on our discretion
There are two major influences on the formation of
discretion in a person. The first major influence is
EFTA00286503
the example of those people we are closest to, such as
our family and friends. The second major influence on
our formation of discretion is ourselves. Sometimes we
call it the ability to be a good teacher to ourselves
[yonisomanasikAra]. Even if you have been listening to
advice for good or bad friends, you always have to
consider advice and justify it to yourself before getting
down to following the advice. If you have accurate
discretion when you consider things, even given faulty
data, you will have the common sense to see through
the discrepancies and come out with the right decision
required by the situation — unlike the man with
unreliable discretion, who even when given reliable
data, will come to the wrong conclusion.
Usually we have to learn discretion from the example
of other people by transactions with them first, before
we can calibrate our "auto-didactic" discretion and
come to accurate conclusions independently — because
in the beginning we have no idea what constitutes a
sensible decision and what constitutes neglect. Thus
when we are learning discretion, at first we are very
vulnerable to the example set by others. The example
they set us may calibrate the way we think for the rest
of our life. Thus a correct example has the power to
correctly calibrate our thinking for the rest of ow lives
— but conversely, a faulty example may damage the
way we think for the rest of our life.
C/ Benefiting from others without catching their bad
habits
Every time we have a transaction with a person it is like
a negotiation or tug-of-war between us to see whose
discretion will brush off who. In a situation where
people are unable to recognize good or bad examples of
discretion, then the exchange of "discretion" will be
like osmosis — flowing from a point of high
concentration to a point of low concentration. If Person
A has a lot of good discretion and Person B less, then
Person A's good discretion will tend to brush off on
Person B. If Person C has a lot of bad discretion and
Person D less, then Person C's bad discretion will
tend to brush off on Person D. In practice though, as
adults with a degree of life experience, we don't
passively let others' habits brush off on us. If we are
able to recognize good habits and good discretion then
we will open ourselves up especially to absorb them.
However, if we recognize bad habits and bad discretion,
then we will try to protect ourselves from picking those
habits up. Thus, normally we are selective— and try (to
the best of our ability and discretion) to pick up good
habits while avoiding the bad ones. In this way, we can
have transactions with others without losing our own
virtues under their influence. You can compare it to
visiting someone in hospital who has a fever. You can
visit them, talk to them and console them — you can do
all these things without catching their fever, but you
would try to avoid having them sneeze over you.
There are some sorts of patients and some sorts of
illness, however, that are so dangerous that we cannot
afford to have any transaction with that person. Such
diseases like the plague are so contagious, that it is not
safe for healthy people to transact (specifically come
into physical contact) with them. Such patients, by the
nature of their diwnw need to be nursed in an isolation
ward with no visitors. If they were animals, they would
be put in quarantine. When considering the transmission
of discretion, there are some cases of those so
contagiously infected with faulty discretion that despite
our immunity or our efforts to be selective, we will
nonetheless be infected by their faulty discretion. Even
if we started with healthy discretion, it would be un-
dermined by the strength of negative discretion of those
people — what more the danger if we are still
inexperienced and impressionable (perhaps still children
or lacking world experience) and don't even know what
it means to be selective? These quarantine victims of
faulty discretion, whether intentionally so or not, are the
first and most fundemental obstacle we will meet as we
try to acquire blessings — in the Manual of Peace we
call such people by the technical name of "fools".
EFTA00286504
D.
FOOLS:
BEARERS
ISIVIMPtEff BASKIN
A fool is someone wicked, or weak, or feeble. They are made
feeble by the fact they habitually think, say and do things that
are unwholesome. The root of the lack in common sense by
which they can justify such unwholesome behaviour is the
fact that they don't have their mind centred or under their
control. To call such a dangerous person a "fool" might seem
like an understatement — because some fools might look like
a proverbial giant punching sandbags, a frightening prospect
for a rhinocerii, let alone a fragile human being. Thus, how
come we use the term "feeble" for a fool? A fool is made
weak like a person made weak by a serious disease
— we do not fear him on the basis of his strength or
knowledge or ability to think — but because his disease
is dangerous.
D.2 Four Human Strengths
Human beings have four different sources of power.
I. Physical Strength: different people are endowed
with different degrees of physical strength. Anyone
with plenty of muscles and no disabilities is endowed
with the first storehouse of power.
2. Strength of Knowledge: derived from one's back-
ground of education and the experience of passing
years. Having the ability to apply educated reasoning in
useful subjects is the second storehouse of power.
3. Strength of Thought: Some people go through the
same number of classes together. They have an equal
amount of knowledge, but their ability to think through
things using their knowledge may not be equal. Some
people know so much, but it is of no use to them when
they come to think things through. Someone may know
how to mend an engine but sits idle all day long. Why
don't they offer their services as a mechanic? Or earn
their living in the engine business? Sitting around all
day long, waiting for someone to come along and find
work for them...? We can blame this on their having
knowledge but not using the knowledge as part of their
thinking. Thus, if anyone uses both their strength of
knowledge and
OF
CONTAGIOliar strength of thought, they are at great advantage
because they are endowed with the third storehouse
of power.
4 Strength of virtue:
strength of thought and
doing, when one is using one's knowledge and thought
to perform good service to oneself and others, one is
endowed with the fourth storehouse of power: strength
of virtue.
When one has both the
mindfulness of what one is
The human being has the potential to be endowed with
all four storehouses of power: physical strength,
strength of knowledge, strength of thought and strength
of virtue.
Even if someone is endowed with (some of) these storehouses of
power, if their judgment is faulty, they will not be able to put
their power to full use. If, for example, a foolish guy is physically
strong, and may be qualified as a professor with a Ph.D., with
plenty of knowledge, but without the ability to think properly, he
will be want to apply his mastery of chemistry for dishonest
purposes (e.g. distilling heroine). Thus even if you arc endowed
with only. ome of the four powers, you can still be classified with
the fools — and those powers arc not used to their full potential.
At the most a fool can use only three of the storehouses of power.
They can use only three of the four. Like a four-cylinder car in
which only three of the spark plugs fire — it is of no use to
anybody. If you have a four-cylinder car, all four need to work in
order to gel benefit from any one of the four. Thus, if you know
your 'cylinders' am damaged, you don't need to wait until none
of them are left firing before you go for mending!
In conclusion, when we define the meaning of a fool as
someone weak or feeble, we can see more clearly now
that it means that they are weak or feeble in doing good
deeds. Now that we know about the risk they present to
our discretion and know a little about the reason for a
fool's weakness, the next challenge that faces us is how
to protect ourselves from them. As we shall see, we
first need to be able to recognize fools — if we can rec-
ognize them, we can more easily protect ourselves from
their influence.
EFTA00286505
El You cannot tell a fool by external appearances
When identifying whether someone is a fool or not, we
cannot base our judgement on external appearances —
we must base our judgement on internal features. The
things we should avoid basing our judgement on
include gender, age, lineage, nationality, connections,
knowledge, job or wealth. Although fools are
characterized by their habitually evil actions of their
body, speech and mind, because all of these three come
from within they might not be obvious to us, especially
if we are still at a stage in our spiritual maturation when
our discretion is still inaccurate. Appearances, gender,
age, lineage, nationality, connections, knowledge, job
and wealth are only indirectly connected with the
quality of the mind. When we want to identify a fool,
we need to look for behaviours that betray their
underlying quality of mind. The sort of behaviours that
are most clearly identifiable are those that come out in
the context of our interaction and friendship with them.
E.2 How to Tell a Fool
We are not mind readers who can observe how others
think. All we can observe are the things which others
express openly — that is others' words and actions.
Even fools have chinks in their armour which will be
revealed as we interact with them — in fact there are
five in all:
L They like to persuade others to do evil things:
Not only does a fool persuade others to do evil. He
will also exemplify those evil deeds for others to
follow. He might skip work on the slightest trivial
pretext and persuade his colleagues to do the same.
2. They like to interfere with things that are none of
their business: A cleaner has the duty simply to keep
the office clean, but if instead of doing her duty, she
leaves her work undone and spends her time
rummaging in the wastepaper baskets for trade secrets,
already you should be suspicious that she is a fool. A
student has the duty to study, but if instead of studying
their subject they waste their time on protests against
the government — then again they might be a fool mas-
querading as intelligentia.
3. They like anything that is improper: Fools have a dislike
for anything that is right and proper. They like playing with
fire. They like taking drugs. They like gambling. They like
fighting fish. They like the opportunity to put a spanner in the
works. You can be sure that anything they like has someone
on the receiving end of their suffering. Even if they take the
chance to ordain as a monk, they will end up being the one to
cause a schism in the order. Their predicament is the same as
the one illustrated in the ancient tale of the angel and the
worm. (See 5G.1 below)
4 They get angry even when spoken to decently:
Suppose a mother warns her daughter to dress modestly
before leaving the house in case the neighbours gossip.
The daughter might reply angrily that this is how
modern people dress. Her mother gave her a perfectly
reasonable piece of advice but her own daughter
answers back with the verbal equivalent of a slap in the
face. Suppose a father advises his son that he should be
revising instead of going on outings so close to his
examinations. "How can you say that?" might shouts
the boy. "Didn't you go for outings when you were
younger?" Often the other person knows that they are in
the wrong, but when they are found out and their fault
is discovered, they lose their temper — the mark of a
fool. A fool is like a person covered in open wounds. If
he bumps into something even only lightly, it hurts. For
a fool, his mind is covered in wounds, and when
confronted with the truth, it hurts. Sometimes even just
a glance is enough to provoke him to aggression.
5. They refuse to comply with rules and regulations:
Fools heeds neither the laws of the country nor the local
customs. If you meet someone who refuses to comply
with the regulations, you can be 99% sure that you are
dealing with a fool. If it wasn't for the law, there would
be a lot more opportunity for fools to express
themselves through the performing of evil deeds. The
law forces fools to have to express themselves less
freely or in secret. The law will thus obscure from the
public eye the real nature of a fool's mind. It is for this
reason that we have to notice the marks
EFTA00286506
of a fool from the first four sorts of behaviour
mentioned above.
If you come across any of these five features, then it
should already be ringing warning bells in your head.
E.3 The sixteen ways a fool might treat you
Some people who may appear on the surface to be
friendly, might be fools masqueradingas friends. The
Lord Buddha called such people false friends
[mittapaEirEpalca] and categorized them into four types
each with four characteristics — giving a total of
sixteen forms of behavioural characteristics to look for.
With friends like these, who needs enemies?
I. The Mercenary [afthadatthuhara]
2. The Man of Empty Promises [vacEparama]
3. The Flatterer [anuppiyabhAAE]
4. The One who Leads you down the Road to Ruin
[apAyasahAya]
I. a mercenary is one who:
I. tries to appropriate your possessions;
2. sacrifices little in the hope of gaining much;
3. helps others only when threatened by the same
danger;
4. only makes friends to serve his own interest;
2. a man of empty promises who:
I. tells you how sad he is not to have been able to
share with you something that has already run out;
2. promises to share with you things they don't yet
have;
3. tries to win your favour with empty promises;
4. has excuses every time called upon to help;
3. a flatterer who:
I. toadies to your evil-doing,
2. toadies to your doing of good;
3. sings praises to your face;
4. gossips about you behind your back.
4. leads you down the road to ruin by:
I. being your loyal drinking companion;
2. being at your side when you roam the streets
at unseemly hours;
3. frequenting games and shows with you;
4. joining you at the gambling table.
Such behaviours illustrate sixteen ways in which a fool
will unwittingly reveal his lack of responsibility.
Besides leading us to ruin, such people lead society
unfalteringly in the direction of deterioration in a way
which is hard to remedy. If you come across any of
these sixteen features, then it should already be ringing
warning bells in your head.
F. I Putting fools in quarantine
In the words of the old Thai proverb:
"Always keep a safe distance — give a hound
an armslength, give a monkey six feet but for a
fool a hundred thousand miles may not be
enough." Just as mentioned earlier, when a person has
such a dangerously contagious disease as faulty discre-
tion, we have no alternative but to isolate them.
However, as we shall see it is not physical distance
which we use to isolate a fool — it is more on the level
of interaction. We have to be careful getting to familiar
with them — that is effectively how we keep
"psychological distance".
F.2 Association Defined
When we talk of associating with others, what are the
limits of our definition? In fact there are seven different
ways in which it is possible to associate with others:
1. Meeting up with fools. This can be called associating
with fools but it is only association in its most
rudimentary form. Of course such association might not
lead to anything. After all it is just our visiting them
and their visiting us. We may not even particularly
enjoy each others company.
Z Getting closer. This is once you start getting more
familiar with the fools you meet up with, start lending
things to one another, talking on subjects of common
interest, and following common pastimes.
3. Feeling a liking for one another. This is once you
EFTA00286507
start to get more familiar, you start to believe that
you have common tastes. You start to believe that
you yourself like anything that they like.
4. Respecting them. After a while, you start to find that
you respect that fool for his particular skills:
(e.g. his skill in gambling) and you start to think
what good luck it is to have this fool as your ac-
quaintance and an example to follow.
5. Moral Support. After having admired the fool for a
long time from a distance, you start to believe anything
they think.
6. Joining in. After sharing the same opinions for a
long time, you start to join in with their activities and
follow the same way of life.
7. Influencing and instilling behaviour to one an-
other. In the final stages of association, it is impossible
to tell the difference between the fool and his
associates. It has also come to the stage when it is
impossible to reverse the effects of the fool on his
associate.
Thus for any reader who realizes that they are under the
influence of a fool they should realize too the danger of
even casual contact with the personality of someone
who is a fool. There will be an unavoidable escalation
of intimacy even without realizing it.
F.3 Practising non-association in everyday life
If you want to avoid associating with fools in your
everyday life, apart from avoiding social contact with
fools as already mentioned, it will be necessary to give
special attention to the following issues:
I. Prohibit yourself from every sort of evil and from
all of the roads to ruin: Don't go thinking that the odd
game of poker amongst close friends, or just to keep
your hand in, can surely be of no harm to anybody.
Prohibit yourself right from the start. This way you will
save yourself from tears in the long run. Even if you are
someone with weak tendencies in the direction of being
a fool, such as liking to get up late and ignoring the
alarm clock you have set for yourself, you should get
tough with yourself right from the
start. Prohibit yourself from doing even the most
minor unwholesome deeds.
2. Make the break from any evils you may have
committed in the past: It doesn't matter what sort of
bad habits you might have had in the past
— don't give yourself even the smallest chance to
relapse. Don't even speak of those things any more.
3. Make Your performance of good deeds continuous
There is no need to think over your past failures or
entangle ourselves in the guilt of your past bad deeds.
Starting from today, you must practise generosity, keep
the Precepts, meditate and do the daily chanting —
continuously. In this way the scars left by ow old way
of life will gradually heal leaving only good behavior in
its place.
4 In the case you have to associate with a fool be
especially carefuL Sometimes we are put in the
situation where we have to associate with fools, even
though we don't want to. Sometimes, for example, we
find out that even our own boss is involved in
corruption. If we refuse to have any part in his dealings,
we might get sacked. What should we do in such a
situation? If we do everything he orders, in the end we
will pick up his bad habits. Our ancestors had a simile
for warning us in such a situation. They said you should
be as careful `as if you were warming yourself before
the fire. If you stay too close to the fire for too long,
you will get burned. If you keep too much distance,
then you will be left shivering in the cold'. Thus, just as
with the fire, you need to keep the appropriate distance
from the fool — not too near and not too far.
5. You can associate with a fool only in the case that
you are sure you have the capability and steadfastness
to help them. Jumping into the water to save a
drowning person is only sensible if you are able to
swim — otherwise you get two drowning people!
Whether you can really help a fool or not depends
whether your own virtue is sufficiently steadfast to
allow you to help them unscathed. If you are not yet
sufficiently steadfast then keep your distance — even
EFTA00286508
if they are your own relatives! If you come across a
friend who takes no heed of your warnings, however
many times you might tell him, you have to resign
yourself to helping him out instead when the
suffering from their own mistakes starts to sink in —
when the circumstances make him a little more
ready to listen. However, if he is not such a bad guy,
and you are able to make some impression on him,
then try to help him — try to keep him from going
under. It's not that you should be hard hearted, but
you have to know our own limits and if helping a
fool is beyond your capability, you have to withdraw
our help and keep our distance in order to survive.
F.4 Interaction without Transaction
Some texts summarize the functions of association as
two fold. Others summarize association as a pathway
as follows: joining, receiving, and giving.
Joining means eating, sleeping and investing to- G.ILLUSTRATIVE EXAMPLES
gethen
•
Receiving means taking someone on as one's spoiriti, The Angel and the Worm (traditional)
one's child, one's employee or as one's extended family. -Mice upon a time there were two young men who were
point where we start to associate with them is the point whiff ends. How they came to be friends no-one knew,
we take them on.
because one was found of doing meritorious deeds, while
•
Giving means that after joining them and taking the other did only evil deeds all his life — like
them on, we give something to them. Such giving includescockfighting, fish fighting, taking drugs and alcohol.
giving them consideration, praise, encouragement, lodging,
food or payment. All of these are included in the definitionWhen he was working as a merchant, he would sell
association.
only fake goods and stolen goods.When he was a
teacher, he wouldn't teach normal subjects to his pupils
— he would teach all the shortcuts and loopholes in the
law.
If you are associating with fools on any of these three Even with such different tastes, the two friends
levels you should be warned to withdraw yourself managed to maintain both their identity and their
before sustaining any further damage.
friendship until they both passed away. When the good
guy died, he was reborn as an angel in heaven. The bad
guy was reborn as a worm in a lavatory. One day the
angel was wondering what had become of his friend.
The angel checked every level of heaven but could not
find his friend. He checked the human realm, but again
his friend was no where to be found.The angel made a
further check and was surprised to see that his friend
had been born as a worm in a lavatory. The angel
wondered what
the world — the fool in the outside world and the inner
fool. The inner fool is the little"devil" that seems all too
ready to justify your doing the things for which you
should know better. They are the erroneous discretion
that creep into our heads, and it is our task to put an end
to the arising of such fools in the mind.
ES The Varieties of Fools
Some people think that they already have enough
discretion to choose their friends and thus overlook the
importance ofthe first blessing. In fact, even though we
may be experienced and adult there is a fool with whom
we have to associate cautiously throughout ow life —
that is our "inner fool". In conclusion, there are two
different types of fool in
Further to the temptation to be complacent about our
ability to recognize fools, it should be added that parents
have a special responsibility to their exemplar-sensitive
children to be cautious about the sort of friends they
associate with — and even to choose a school and teacher
for their children to help them to avoid associating with
fools. This subject is dealt with in more detail in Blessing
Thirteen
— nevertheless a little extra attention on this front right
from the beginning of our study of the blessings can
help to ensure a bright future for them — preventing
tears when it's too late to reverse the problems (like
drug-addiction).
EFTA00286509
he could do to help his friend, and tolerated the
revolting smell of the lavatory out of compassion in
order to stand at the edge of the toilet bowl and make
himself known to his friend. Standing at the rim of the
toilet bowl, he changed himself into his old human
form.
"Old friend do you remember me?"asked the angel.
"Of course," said the worm."We used to be friends a
long time ago."
"O! Worm! Now I am an angel. Today I have come to do
you the biggest favour of your life. I have come to invite
you to join the heavenly host. However, there is one
condition. If you want to be an angel you have to keep all
the precepts without breaking any of them from this day
onwards. You must think only meritorious thoughts and do
meritorious deeds and before long we'll be able to abide in
the same heavenly host."
"What's so great about being an angel?' asked the
worm.
"You can get whatever you wish instantly simply by
thinking of it. As soon as you think of angelic sustenance,
ambrosia manifests itself. If you think of clothing then
instantly you are clothed in angelic apparel. If you think of
a heavenly mansion, then a heavenly mansion arises
instantaneously. All you have to do is have the intention
and hundreds of good things will come your way.
"In that case I don't want to be an angel. I'm better off
as a worm thank you."
"What do you mean?" asked the angel.
"If you are an angel you have to make the wish before
you get what you want. As a worm I don't even have to
make the effort to think. Excrement in the toilet just
keeps on flowing into my mouth. Just leave me alone
because I'm better off as a worm." In such a case it is
obvious that he is so used to his foolish ways that in the
end he is beyond help.
G.2 Metaphor: Leaves wrapping a stinking fish
Another parable used by the Lord Buddha is that of the
leaves wrapping a putrid fish taking on the same
putrescant smell of the fish itself.
6.3 Metaphor: Burning hovel next to a palace
Our ancestors had a parable. They said that to associate
with a fool, no matter how good we might originally
be, is like building a palace next door to a hovel.
Whenever the hovel catches fire, no matter how safe
the palace is from fire, as soon as the hovel goes up in
flames the palace bums down as well, just like the
virtuous person destroyed by association with fools.
G.4 MahAkassapa's Kuti Burned Down by Foolish
Student (KuEidEssaka JAtaka J.iii.71)
In the time of the Lord Buddha, there was an elder monk
of unblemished virtue named Kassapa. He was respected
by all of the enlightened monks and other members of the
monastic community. Even the Lord Buddha's closest
discipleinanda, had great respect for Ven. Kassapa.
It was the norm for the elder monks of the community to
accept newly-ordained monks as their disciples, in order that
those new monks could receive training. Some of the elders
accepted more than others in keeping with their ability as
teachers. Ven. Kassapa accepted three or four disciples but it
turned out that among their number was a stubborn monk,
Ululkasaddaka who would listen tono-one's advice. On
winter evenings it was the duty of the disciples to boil water
for the elder monks for them to take a bath in comfort. The
stubborn disciple would never boil water for Ven. Kassapa in
accordance with his duty. lie would always leave the chore of
boiling the water to his fellows while going himself to invite
Ven. Kassapa to wash as if he had boiled the water himself.
Everything else the stubborn disciple did was in the
same vain. Instead of going on alms round, if he fancied
something special to eat the stubborn monk would
claim to temple supporters that Yen. Kassapa wanted
such•and-such to eat and when they brought
such•and-such a food to offer, he would eat it himself.
Ven. Kassapa knew what was going on and warned the
stubborn monk; to be so lacking in respect is not in
keeping with having ordained as a monk. You must
train yourself better than this in
EFTA00286510
future."Kassapa warned the stubborn monk con-
tinuously, but the only effect of the criticism was to
make him feel as if his master was singling him out
unfairly for criticism.The more advice he received from
his master, the more victimized he felt. Instead of
feeling grateful for all the special attention his master
had given him, he planned on getting his revenge. He
planned the following day instead of going out on
almsround with the rest of the disciples for the master's
breakfast, he'd stay behind, let the master go for
almsround himself and burn down the master's kuti
while he was gone. In this case it is clear to see the
behaviour of a fool who repays a master's advice given
with the best of intentions, by burning down his
master's house. Ven. Kassapa came back from his
almsround to find only ashes where his kuti had stood.
The disciple had run away.
The Lord Buddha heard the story and disclosed to Ven.
Kassapa that the stubborn disciple had been a fool
causing damage not only in this lifetime, but in
previous lifetimes as well:
In that previous lifetime, Kassapa had been born as an
oriole while the stubborn monk had been born as a
monkey. The two inhabited the same tree. The oriole
wanted to waste no time in building a nest to protect
itself from sun, rain and dust — but at the same time
the oriole warned the monkey, he ought to build himself
a nest against wind and rain, sun and dust, because he
had perfect gripping hands like a man, and could build
a nest even more easily than the bird with her beak. The
oriole told the monkey to build its own nest again and
again. but the monkey never took any notice. When it
came to the monsoon, the oriole ducked into the shelter
of its nest whenever it rained, while the monkey sat out
in the rain sobbing. The oriole felt sorry for the monkey
and thought the time had come to tell the monkey to
build a nest. Perhaps now that he'd had a good soaking
he'd see the value of the advice. Thus the oriole poked
its head out of its nest and told the monkey ,"you ought
to build yourself a nest against wind and rain, sun and
dust, because you have perfect gripping hands like a
man, you can build a nest even more easily than I can
with my beak. As soon as the rain stops build yourself a
nest !"
The monkey replied,"If I wanted to build a nest I could
build one easily — but even though my body is like
that of a man, my intelligence is the lesser."
"You're a strange case," said the oriole. "Some days you
go around destroying the nests of others but when it comes
to the monsoon, you're the only one without a roof over
your head. This is the destiny of one ungrateful for the
generosity of others. You had better stars improving your-
self?"
The monkey was stirred to anger by the criticism. Soaked
to the skin by rain and only insulted further by a bird from
inside the comfort of a dry nest, the monkey climbed up
the tree to the oriole's nest and pulled the nest to pieces.
As a monkey he had pulled the oriole's nest to pieces.
As a human, he put his own master's kwi to the flame,
even though his master had spoken only kind
words.These are the identifying features of a fool and
are the reason why we have to beware of this type of
person.
EFTA00286511
Blessing Two: Associating
with the Wise
A. INTRODUCTION
The second Blessing of the Thirty-Eight, concerns how
in our self-cultivation we can successfully close the
door on unwholesomeness in our lives, to prevent
ourselves from slipping any further back on the slippery
slope of spiritual entropy. At this point, when our
discretion and sense of conscience is still not very
accurate, we are not yet sufficiently versed in spiritual
ways to become a Wise One ourselves. However, what
we can start by doing is to learn how to recognize
others who are, and to associate with them so that some
of their discretion may brush off on us.
A. I Difference between knowledge and wisdom
A wise one is distinguished by his or her wisdom.
Before starting this blessing it is important to define this
wisdom clearly because being 'wise' is not the same as
being 'educated'. 'Wisdom' as intended in this blessing
is the discretion as to what is real 'profit' in our lives as
outlined by omission in our description of fools in
Blessing One. In fact, being educated is also a blessing,
but its details can be found in Blessing Seven. The
word "wise one" of this Blessing comes from the Pali
word "paMita" better known in our language as
"pundit". Some people believe that you can become a
"pundit" simply by getting yourself a graduation
certificate from a reputable university. In fact if you get
yourself a good degree and set yourself up in business
and
make a success of it, you will earn praise and respect
from many other people. However, there are no small
number of the more unscrupulous amongst these who
find themselves behind prison bars inspite of all their
academic knowledge. Thus in spite of all their good
intentions it is reasonable to assume that such graduates
are not truly wise but are only wise in the ways of the
world. The sort of wisdom we are interested in, in this
section, is the sort of wisdom that will, at the very least,
keep you out of jail and ensure wholesome profit for the
owner both this lifetime and in the here after. This sort
of wisdom is called spiritual wisdom. The best example
of the wise man in the present day must have both
wisdom of the ways of the world and spiritual wisdom
to a true example of a wise man.
WISE ONE
We are all people alike, equipped with a body and a
mind, so what can be blamed for the different amounts
of success people meet with as they go through their
lives? Why is it advantageous to associate with one sort
of person and not another? If you look at people just on
the surface, the reason is not obvious. You have to look
deeper.
B.1 People distinguished by quality of mind
In these days of human rights, we do all we can to make
people equal, but it is not always so easy.
EFTA00286512
When it comes to differences of wealth or access to
education, it makes sense to give people the maximum
of opportunities to help themselves. But where the
system of rights breaks down is when people no longer
want to help themselves any more — or when people
don't even want to live their lives by the rules of
decency that bind society together. Of course there are
some people who claim that even criminals should be
given full human rights and who spend their time
feeling sorry for sentenced murderers. However, for the
most part we accept that when a person's behaviour
deviates into violence or vengefulness or cruelty so far
as that of a wrong-doer, no matter whether the police
catch him or not, that they are no longer dealing with a
person like you or me any more. There is a "screw
loose" somewhere in the thinking of such people. Even
though they might have two arms, two legs and a head
just like you or me, but there is a difference of mind so
great that it makes that person dangerous. Whets more
the deviation of thinking of such people is (as discussed
in Blessing One) so contagious that it brushes off on the
people who associate with them.
B.2 Effect of differences in the quality of mind
It is differences of mind' that distinguish such people
from the rest of the world whose lives are governed by
discretion.To pinpoint why a fool suffers from faulty
discretion, is hard to explain to a person who has never
tried meditation. The difference between the mind of a
fool and the mind of a wise one is a difference of
quality. The mind of a fool is one where the thoughts
are confined — a mind which is unyielding and blind.
Such a mind is dull and cannot think constructively
about any subject. Such a mind is blind to reality. If
you were to compare such a mind to glass, you could
compare it to opaque or frosted glass.Whatever you
look at through glass of this type will appear distorted,
dark and formless. By contrast, the mind of a wise man
is like crystal clear glass. Everything viewed through
the glass is crystal clear. Like a clear mirror, you can
even see yourself as you really are.
I. The terms 'mind' or 'mental' are used in the Asian sense meaning
the abstract phenomena of 'spirit' or 'awareness' rather than the
western concept of 'brain' or 'nervous system'.
You might doubt that the mind, as an abstract phenomenon, could
have such a powerful influence on our destiny — but the mind is
in fact of utmost importance because every dealing we have with
the world must pass through the channel of our mind. Consider
looking al the world in the minor. What ever is situated in front
of the minor will show its reflection instantly. Furthermore, a
minor only the size of the palm of your hand is large enough to
show the reflection of an entire mountain! All it needs is for the
minor to be really clear, that's all, in order to be able to show
instantly the reflection of any object, indiscriminable from the
real object itself. In the same way, all it takes is for the mind to be
really clear and it too can instantly hold, examine and understand
anything and everything as it really is. All of this is by contrast
with the man who has a clouded mind (who we have compared to
a dull or frosted minor) which can do nothing to facilitate clear
understanding, who cannot comprehend clearly because his own
mind is clouded. Because the mind of a fool is distorted, he sees
the world in a distorted way. When everything he sees is
distorted, how does he interact with the world? The answer to this
question is, —in the way he thinks is appropriate" — namely,
according to thought, speech and action which arc distorted from
the norm. On the contrary, because a wise man has a mind that is
crystal clear like a diamond he secs the world clearly — as it
really is. Thus, he can deal with the world in a way that is
appropriate on a more cosmic level than the fool who is locked
up in his own selfish view of the world.
Meditation is the main means by which we can upgrade
the quality of our mind. Once we realize the peril of
having a mind which is dull, clouded and of generally
low quality, we can start to appreciate why meditation
is so important in the prevention and cure of problems
in our lives.
B.3 The Ups and Downs of the Mind from Day-to-Day
Very few people are out and out murderers and
plunderers. At the same time very few people are
completely pure in mind. The ones who are already
"arahants" have no need to waste time reading a book
like this.
EFTA00286513
An example of ups and downs in the quality of mind of
someone like you or me, who lies between the
extremes, is the man who gets up in the morning with
the best of intentions and enthusiastically prepares
almsfood to offer to the monks. At the time he is
preparing the food his mind is as clear as that of a wise
man. However, even before the monks have arrived on
almsround, he has lost his temper, shouting at his
children and his state of mind has been reduced to that
of a fool. When the monks arrive, his mind is back to a
state of clarity as he gives the alms and pours water
from the vessel to transfer the merit — he has recovered
for himself the clear mind of a wise man. But as he is
leaving for work he spoils his state of mind again,
shouting at his kids for being late for school. As soon as
he leaves the house, he gets his temper back. In the best
of moods he makes the intention to do the very best he
can at work that day — to make every penny of the
wage he receives from his employer worthwhile. The
black clouds in his mind go over the horizon and he's
back in the frame of mind fitting for a wise man. But
alas, another car cuts in in front of him, someone
overtakes him on the inside and thoughts of revenge stir
up a storm of road rage in his mind spoiling his quality
of his mind and the rest of his day. Don't worry this
man is not something special. When talking about such
imperfection of mind it is not the same as mental illness
— merely inefficiency in our quality of mind. Most of
us have the same ups and downs in the course of
making our way through life in the real world.
R4 Varieties of people
If we were to divide people according to the quality of
their minds, being very simplistic we can divide people
into a minimum of three different types:
I. Those whose mind is usually clouded — the
fools;
2. Those whose mind is usually clear — the wise;
3. Those half way in between whose mind is not
entirely clear, but at the same time their mind is not
completely obscured by clouds.
This third category represents the majority of good
intentioned people in the world. We're not yet free of
mental defilements and for this reason we earn the
special name of kalyAAabAla. "KalyAAa" means
beautiful or good. "BAla" means the fool. Together the
two words mean the good-intentioned fool. Sometimes
a fool, sometimes a wise man — but not a 100%
accomplished example of either of the two. Another
term often used in Buddhism for this sort of person is
tputhujana'. The root meaning of "puthu" is Thick'.
The root of 'liana" means person. Such a thick person
doesn't mean that he lacks intelligence, but conveys
instead that he has a thick rind or peel — and the thing
that makes it thick is the defilements in the mind. In the
case of those whose layer of defilements is not so thick
that they can still listen to reason, they can be referred
to as kalyAAaputhujana, because they still have some
hope of scrubbing through those defilements to reach
the innate wisdom that lies within. The first step for a
kalyAAaputhujana in working his way towards his own
inner wisdom is to be able to recognize the wise men
amongst his acquaintances so that he can pick up on the
good character possessed by a wise man as his standard
in elevating the quality of his own mind.
We can define the Wise One in any one of four ways.
In effect, the definitions overlap — they differ only in
emphasis:
Cl Defined in terms of discretion
A Wise One is one who has the discretion to dis-
criminate what behaviour is wholesome and what
behaviour is unwholesome, specifically:
•
knowing what constitutes good and what con-
stitutes evil;
•
knowing what constitutes right and what con-
stitutes wrong;
•
knowing what constitutes merit [putitia] and what
constitutes demerit [pApa]
C.2 Defined in terms of behaviour
A Wise One is someone who habitually thinks, speaks
and acts in a good way. All of the features of
EFTA00286514
a wise man discussed so far have all been his external
characteristics — but on closer inspection it turns out
that the wise man has several spiritual features that
distinguish him from the ordinary fool:
I. The wise one is wont to think habitually in a good
way: His habitual way of thinking comprises at
minimum: non-greed, non-hatred and right view. Going
beyond this, his thoughts are downright wholesome and
include loving kindness (in place of non-hatred),
generosity (in place of non-greed) and right view (in
place of wrong view).
2. The wise one is wont to speak habitually in a good
way: The wise man is apt to be well spoken in
diametric opposition to the fool who has only a babble
of insults to decorate his intelligence. There are four
ways in which the wise speak good words:
I. He avoids telling lies. The wise one will always
speak the truth. He is always a man of his word.
2. He avoids divisive speech. The wise man by
contrast will always be the one to mend the
differences between others by his words. He will be
the one to forge harmony within a group.
3. He avoids the use of swear words and harsh
words. No matter how angry the wise man is, he will
not even consider insulting others. The wise man
gives careful thought to the every word that escape
his lips.
4. He avoids idle chatter. If the wise man knows
what he has to say is without use, he will keep it to
himself — he will maintain 'noble silence'.
3. The Wise One is wont to do only good deeds: The
wise one likes to perform physical good deeds with an
emphasis on being compassionate [mettAlkarunA],
getting down to earning an honest living [sammA
AjEva] and marital fidelity. The fool by contrast is
continually killing, stealing and committing adultery.
C.3 Defined in terms of virtues
A Wise One is wont to demonstrate the following four
virtues:
I. Gratitude [katalifiE]: He recognizes the debt of
gratitude he may have to others
2. Self-Purifying [attasuddhi]: He purifies himself of
all evil
3. Purity [parisuddhi]: He purifies others of all evil
4. Endearing [salgaha]: makes himself useful to society
C.4 Defined in terms of the profit sought from life
In Blessing One we have already seen that the dis-
cretion concerning the nature of profit in life for a fool
is different from that of a Wise One. In Buddhism we
have two definitions of profit in life: profit in the
short-term and profit in the hereafter.
C.4.1 Material profit defined (A.iv.281)
The Lord Buddha taught four ways in which the wise
one accrues benefits in the present lifetime (in Pali the
diEEhadhammikatthapayojana). In Thai culture they
are colloquially referred to as the 'four chambers of the
millionaire's heart' or more simply, the way to set
yourself up in life. As we have said, sitting idle will do
nothing to ensure your comfort in life. Comfort doesn't
come unearned.Thus comfort in one's old age must
come from hard work in one's youth, when one is still
physically strong enough to be productive in one's
work. The wise will, while they are young, store up the
means to live comfortably in their old age when they
are no longer able to earn. There are four virtues for ac-
cruing benefit in the present life. These are:
I. Diligent Acquisition [uEEAnasampadA] i.e. not
being too lazy to go out and earn a living. Wise is the
man who applies himself to the task in hand (not sitting
around all day and waiting for money to appear
magically)
2. Stewardship [ArakIchasampadA] means both saving
and protecting what you have earned
3. Associating with Good Friends [kalyAAamittatAJ
means the same as associating with the wise — that is
the title of this Blessing — and to avoid associating
with the evil — especially the sort that are always
trying to persuade you to go and gamble or go down to
the pub.
EFTA00286515
4. Appropriate Spending: [samajtvittA]. This means
being thrifty in spending your earnings. Anyone who
has already expended so much effort in earning a day's
wage should get full benefit from their own earnings
without being extravagant and also without being so
stingy they don't allow themselves to use their money
for any material comfort.
C.4.2 Spiritual profit defined (A.iv.284)
The wise man recognizes that he cannot live by bread
alone and that for all the material wealth he might earn,
it cannot buy him spiritual fulfilment. Thus a second
important form of profit in life is spiritual profit —
better known as profit in life for the hereafter. This
again consists of four virtues to be cultivated during
one's lifetime [sampAyikattha-payojana].
I. Faith or Confidence means faith that doing good
deeds will lead to good outcomes (for the doer) and that
doing evil will lead to bad retribution and giving rise to
the commitment to perform the maximum of good
deeds throughout one's life. Faith is the first step upon
the road to striving to do so many good deeds.
Sometimes the clarity of peoples' minds is insufficient
for their mind to be faithful continuously. They may be
faithful when they wake up but later on in the morning
the inspiration fades away. The Lord Buddha referred
to such faith as `turtle-head faith' because sometimes
the faith shows itself like the head of a turtle, but just as
often it will disappear out of sight inside its shell! This
is not the nature of the faith of a wise man whose faith
is steadfast and commitment continuous. 'Turtle-head
faith' is not so hard to find — like the man who takes
the Precept in the morning not to kill any living being
but as soon as the tiniest of mosquitos tries to bite him
he is slapping it as if his good intentions are all
forgotten — but the mosquito disposed of he thinks,
"Oh! I'm taking the Precepts today, all you mosquitos
had better get out of my way before I change my
mind!" Such 'turtle-head faith' is no use to a wise man.
With a mind that is crystal clear, a promise even to
oneself, is a promise to be kept.
Z The Precepts. You must keep the minimum of Five
Precepts as the baseline of one's virtue because the
Precepts measure the degree to which you are a person
as opposed to being a savage. Any time you want to
find out to what extent you are human, you can use the
Five Precepts as your benchmark. If all five of the
Precepts have been perfectly kept, you can conclude
that you are 100% human that day. If only four of your
Precepts remain intact, you can conclude that you are
only 80% human. If only three remain you are only
60% human, your fangs are beginning to show. If only
two remain you are only 40% human, your fangs are
longer and traces of a tail are visible. If only one
remains you are only 20% human and the remainder of
you is 80% savage. If none of your Precepts remain
intact, nothing human remains about you. Try swapping
yourself fora dog in anyone's house but no-one will
accept the trade in. The dog is worth more than you are.
You can fairly say that keeping the Five Precepts is the
thing that closes the doors of hell. Because Five
Precepts are the only thing that underpin our status in
the human realm. Thus for the wise man, there is no
doubt as to maintaining the Five Precepts and his hu-
manness for the whole time, throughout his life.
3. Generoshy: That we are still alive and well today on
the long path since our birth is only because we have
relied upon the generosity of others all along the way. If
on the day we were born, our mother had refused us her
milk, our first day of our life would have been our last.
If all throughout our childhood, our mother, father and
relatives had refused us their care and attention, where
would we be today? The fact that we have managed to
learn to read and write and master knowledge of the
world is only because our teachers have given their time
and energy to educate us all through our schooldays
[vidhayadAnaJ. Whenever we have made mistakes, in
our childhood and maybe only been punished for it and
then forgiven (rather than being put to death for our
errors) is because others have been prepared to forgive
us our tres-
EFTA00286516
passes [abhayadAna]. When you grow up and many,
again you can only get by as a result of the time and
energy your spouse gives to support you, sharing
mutual earnings. Without such giving the marriage
would certainly be on the rocks within the space of
seven days. Ultimately, even the pavilion where you
go to listen to sermons and the chairs you sit on to
listen to it, all originate from the charity of others and
that there is a monk with the time and energy to give
you
the sermon
is another sort of giving
[dhammadAna]. Thus, in addition to faith and
keeping the Precepts, it is necessary to be generous
too if you are to number amongst the wise.
4. Wisdom [paiiiiA]: To be specific, anyone who is
diligent in studying the teachings of the Lord Buddha
will attain wisdom — the mark of a wise man. Anyone
who lies around in bed all day has no chance of
accruing wisdom. For the wise man, simply developing
the four chambers of the millionaires' heart is not
enough. He must seek out wisdom too. When it comes
to a holiday instead of lying around in front of the TV
or going to the cinema, he is already on his way to the
temple in the early morning to study what the Buddha
taught. This is what we call seeking out wisdom.
The fool is one whose understanding of profit in life
conforms neither to material nor spiritual profit in life.
Thus we can say that the wise man is one who
understands and works towards profit both in this
lifetime and the here after — i.e. both material and
spiritual profit in life.
C.5 Defined in terms of quality of mind
The wise man is one whose mind is habitually pure. A
person could be completely unqualified. He could even be
completely illiterate — but if his mind is habitually pure,
he is a wise man. The reason for this is that just the fact
that the mind is pure has a snowball effect because it sets
his standards of judgement and discretion and this alone
will ensure that wisdom is invested in everything he does
— whether it may be thought, speech or action.
D.I Tell-tale Behaviours (5)
Many of the characteristics of a Wise One mentioned
above may not be immediately apparent to us because
they are not external features. Thus we may have to look
at the following five characteristics which will betray the
wholesome inward qualities of someone who is wise:
I. The wise like to shepherd others to live their lives in
a proper way. Asked where one can go on a Sunday, he
will reply, "to the temple of course
— don't waste your time going to the cinema." Or
passing him in the street, "it looks like rain, you
ought to get the harvest in before it spoils." If you
were to meet a fool in the same circumstances, he'd
give you altogether different advice — "it looks like
rain, if you're feeling aches & pains you'd be better
off down at the bar with a stiff whisky down your
throat!" Both the fool and the wise man are
persuaders but their persuasion leads to different
results indeed.
2. The wise take full responsibility for the things that
are their own business. Apart from being responsible,
they will influence those around them to be responsible
in the same way. What the wise won't do is interfere
with other peoples' business. They know where to draw
the line in order to avoid nosing into others' affairs. The
fool by contrast is often more interested in interfering in
other peoples' business than he is about taking
responsibility for what he's meant to be doing.
3. The wise favour the honest and the decent. Its no
use trying to persuade him to be dishonest or
unscrupulous, because he is above those sort of things.
The fool by contrast is proud of the fact that he can get
away with anything. Nothing is too low for him.
4 The wise man is not easily angered. He is grateful
for criticism from others. The fool, by contrast, even if
criticized in the politest of ways will lose his temper.
Even if someone offers him criticism with the best of
possible intentions, he'll turn round with a scowl and
answer back, "you've been constantly picking on my
faults".
EFTA00286517
If you smile at him, he'll interpret your smile as teasing and
turn his back on you. Even just speaking to a fool can make
him low his temper. Sometimes you don't even need to say
anything. Just seeing you look at him can upset him — -What
are you looking at me like that for?" The fool is constantly on
the lookout for a fight. The wise man by contrast is hard to stir
to anger. Thus if you recognize yourself as hot-tempered, you
ought to associate with the wise and this will gradually cool
down your flay temper. However, you shouldn't confuse the
cool-tempered wise man with the inert and irresponsive char-
acter of the sort of guy who sleeps all day and seems to do
everything in slow-motion. These dopey sorts are irresponsive
to nearly everything around them, but don't think they're free
of all defilements. They am another breed of person altogether
from the wise men we aim to associate with.
5. The wise favour self discipline and orderliness.
When we live together in society with a huge number of
other people, if we don't comply with the laws laid
down in society, we end up as
misanthropes. The
regulations say that when you are at the temple, at the
appropriate time you must come to sit in the main
pavilion and sit in neat lines, without encroaching on
the people sitting next to you, that way there is enough
space for everyone and everyone has an equal area to sit
in. The fool, however, doesn't respect the rules. He
doesn't like obeying anyone or anything. He'll be the
only one to sit out of line, sticking out like a sore
thumb. He's like a spanner in the works. For temples in
general, people go to the temple with the best of
intention to accrue as much merit as possible but when
it comes to mealtimes, they end up fighting to get to the
front of the queue like vultures. In the morning they are
like angels walking on the Earth, but when lunchtime
comes, they are like hungry ghosts!
In conclusion, the good thing about associating with the
wise is that it will develop our discretion to be that of
the wise with whom we associate — or to come to the
real point — it will allow our mind to
become bright and clear like that of the wise man.
D.2 Qualities of a Wise One's Friendship
Alternatively, the Wise One can also be noticed by his
characteristics of being a true friend who exhibits all
three sorts of responsibility:
responsibility for his own personal dignity
responsibility for the human dignity of others
responsibility for a fair economic system In our
association with such Wise Ones, we will be able to recognize
their level of responsibility from the quality of their
friendship. If we are a good friend to them, then we should
see the following characteristics in the friendship which is
returned. However, even amongst True Friends, the respon-
sibility can be manifested in different ways. The Buddha
subdivided True Friends into four groups. He identified each
group by four examples of be
haviours — giving a total of sixteen characteristics to
look for in a good friend.
I. The Helpful Friend [upakaraka]
2. The Constant Friend [samanasukhadulckha]
3. The Friend of Wise Counsel [atthakkhayi]
4. The Sympathetic Friend [anukampaka]
I. a helpful friend is one who:
I. protects you even when you are off your guard;
2. helps protect your property even when you
neglect it;
3. is your refuge in times of danger;
4. always provides you with twice as much as you
asked for;
2. a constant friend is constant in bad times and good:
I. they confide in you;
2. they don't go spreading your secrets around;
3. they don't abandon you when you fall on hard
times;
4. they would even die in your place;
3. they give you good counsel:
I. they warn you against unwholesome behaviour
2. encourage you towards wholesome behaviour;
3. save up new things to tell you;
EFTA00286518
4. point you in the direction of heaven.
4. they empathize with you:
I. they don't laugh at your misfortunes;
2. they congratulate you on your good fortune,
3. they speak out against anyone who maligns you,
4. they stand up for those who speak well of you
As you can see, all sixteen characteristics of the True
Friend are characteristics that lead to the creation of
positivity.
E. ASSOCIATION
E.I How to associate with the wise (7)
The Lord Buddha taught seven features of behaviour
which counts as association with the wise. If your
association misses out on any of these seven factors, it
cannot be counted as fruitful association. The seven
features are as follows:
I. Frequently meeting up with them. If you know that
someone has the characteristics of a wise man, you
ought to seek him out and visit him regularly. If you
hear that such and such a temple has wise people going
to it, then that should be the temple you are visiting
regularly. This is the first step to true association.
Without it no association can come about.
2. Make yourself known to them. What this means is
that when you have gone out of your way to seek out a
wise man, you should make yourself known to them,
not sit just out of their line of vision round the corner.
Whenever they go to the boxing or the fashion show
they are right at the ringside or up against the catwalk,
but when they go to the temple and see one of the
monks coming, they will disappear to the back row of
the pavilion. In such a case, even though they have
come as far as the temple where the wise are to be
found, they cannot be said to have associated with the
wise.
3. Sincerely towards them. If there is any affection in
your association, you must be sincere to one another —
with nothing behind your back. There is no secret
which your other half can't ask about and get a straight
answer. Loyalty means that
there is no hidden agenda concerning your as-
sociation. But even this is not enough.
4. Loyalty towards them. Where in sincerety, your
association is bound through affection, in loyalty the
association is bound through respect. Thus to make for
the best of possible associations you should do nothing
to diminish either the love or respect that bonds the
relationship. Also you should do nothing to interrupt
the train of thought of the wise man with whom you
have chosen to associate whether it be through careless
speech or otherwise. This is what we call loyalty.
5. Help them in times of need. Whenever we notice
that our associate (the wise one) is busy with something
we could help with, we should offer our help without
reluctance. However, if we know that our associate has
something that we could help with and we keep our
silence instead of offering our assistance, we can hardly
call our association a friendship. Just imagine if a group
of so-called friends all come together at meal time but
cannot be found when it comes to time for work. Such a
group could hardly be called friends.
6. When free joining up to talk and eat together. When
the wise have free time they come together to discuss
the Dhamma and to clear up their doubts (not to gossip
about the neighbours).
7. Reflection on Dhamma and Getting Down to
Earnest Practice. This is one of the most important
headings. Even if you have diligently followed the
previous six steps but omit this seventh step, you
cannot call it true association. Also, if you do none of
the first six but do the seventh one, it is as good as true
association, because Dhamma always has the same
flavour — it always gives rise to self discipline [sEla]:
it always gives rise to concentration [samAdhi]: and it
always gives rise to wisdom [paiiiiA]. Thus even if you
have never met your wise associate before, even on
your first meeting you will feel as if you have been
friends for a thousand years, or for many lifetimes —
because both of you have Dhamma in your hearts — it
is Dhamma that binds your association.
EFTA00286519
The behaviour that we refer to as association means that
that whatever happens you will do things in
togetherness. If there is work you will work together.
Accept each others' help, accept the same identity,
accept the same place of abode, accept work in the
same place. If you possess anything, you will be willing
to lend it to them or give it to them, giving them
possessions or respect. In conclusion the operant parts
of the process of association with the wise are sharing,
accepting and giving. If you expand upon these three
then you arrive at the seven steps described at the
beginning of this section.
£2 Principles of Association
Like all the groups of people closest to us in the world, the
best way we can get the virtues of the wise to brush off on
us is associate with them as 'good friends'. The Buddhist
teaching most relevant to the cultivation of a fruitful
friendship is the 'northern quarter' of the SilgalovAda
Sutta which gives us the following practical advice about
how good friends should treat each other:
The Buddha laid down five examples of duties we
ought to practice in order to express our responsibility
towards ow friends:
I. generosity: anyone possessed of Right View [sammA
diEEhi] is bound to moved to compassion when seeing
others experiencing hardship or suffering — and
generosity is the way in which he can ameliorate the lot
of friends caught in such a situation, while at the same
time strengthening his bond of friendship to that person;
2. kind words: if a person is able to relinquish the Four
Defilements of Action, and has the altruism of a Good
Friend [kalyAAamitta] he will be of the habit of
speaking only words that are polite and true;
3. helping and acting for their welfare: endowed with
the characteristics of a True Friend, one will have the
altruism to want to do things for the benefit of one's
friends;
4. being consistent: however well one has treated one's
friends in the past, one will not suddenly change to
treat them better or worse because of
force of circumstances. Just because one gets a
promotion in rank which is better than that of one's
old friend, one will not subsequently look down on
him;
£ never telling them lies: as good friend what one says
will never deviate from the truth.
It is only possible to fulfil the demands of these five
duties if one has already had the qualifies of a true
friend instilled by effective upbringing at the hands of
one's parents, teachers and employers.
In turn those wise friends should practice the following
five duties towards us in order to express their sense of
responsibility towards us:
1. protect us when we are off our guard: learning that
we are in the midst of problems as a result of our own
recklessness, if it happens that such recklessness is not
in our nature, if a friend is true, they will intervene and
help — if they leave us to our recklessness you can
know that they are an enemy in a friend's guise;
Z help protect our property even when we neglect it:
such is the behaviour of a true friend;
3. be our refuge in times of danger: willingness to let
us rely on them is the sign of a true friend;
4. not abandoning us in times of trouble: this is the
sign of a Good Friend [kalyAAamitta];
5. show due respect to other members of our family:
friends who not only show us respect, but also respect
those to whom we have debts of gratitude, our children
and grandchildren as if they were part of their own
family — are indeed true friends.
All five duties of a friend are identifying features of a
truly Good Friend — if we ever have the luck to come
across such a genuine friend, we must take care to
associate closely with them, treating them with respect,
in keeping with the Buddha's advice: "associate with
them respectfully, like a mother to her sons"
It is pertinent to observe that such a genuine friend
could only arise in the world as the result of an
amenable environment (see forthcoming Blessing
Four), especially those in whose company they grew
up, in order for the good habits of those people to
EFTA00286520
have brushed off on him and been preserved in his own
personality. It is such people that society and nation
alike are crying out for — because such a person has
tremendous power of virtue stored up inside them —
sufficient power to channel the tide of society and
economics around him down the same virtuous path.
E.3 What are the consequences when there are no
Wise Ones to be found?
If there are no genuinely wise ones to be found in
society or if those posing as 'wise' fail to cherish others
according to the advice of the Buddha, many sorts of
harm arise on individual, interpersonal and social
levels. Many of the potential problems can be
extrapolated to the relationship between government
and the citizens it is supposed to be a refuge too. If the
government fails to be a Wise Friend toils citizens, it
the false friendship brings serious problems on a
national level. In conclusion, the harm that arises when
there is lack of association with the wise manifests
itself on three levels:
1. Losing a sense of responsibility for their own
human dignity: If friends lack self-discipline and don't
fulfil their duties towards one another as prescribed by
the Lord Buddha, the first level of disaster which will
happen to them is that they will lose their sense of
responsibility for their own human dignity — this loss
giving rise (at the minimum) to the following three
undesirable symptoms:
1. Breaking the Five Precepts: Because there is an
atmosphere of mutual suspicion, former friends will
deceive and lie to each other. The pledges of
allegiance they formerly kept to one another will be
nullified in the way often seen in political circles;
2. Chronic False View: Lacking discretion as to right
and wrong, virtue and misdeed, appropriate and
inappropriate and the Law of Karma, there is nothing
they will not do as a means to procure power, money
and personal profit;
3. Mistreats Friends: They might resort to back
stabbing of former friends in order to procure
personal ends;
2. Losing a sense of responsibility for the human dignity
of others: If friends lack self-discipline and don't fulfil the
duties towards one another prescribed by the Lord
Buddha, the second level of disaster which will happen to
them is that they will lose their sense of responsibility for
the human dignity of others — this loss giving rise (at the
minimum) to the following three undesirable symptoms:
I. Harbours bias: They will lose their sense of fair-
ness and will be continually biased in favour of their
own cronies — not with altruistic thoughts for even
their own people, but in order to pave the way to
personal profit;
2. Disloyalty to homeland: Out of selfishness and
False View, they will become narrow-minded and
unrefined in their thinking. All they will think about
is how to maximize the profits they can procure for
themselves and their cronies — to the point they will
no longer have any sense of loyalty to their own
country, religion or nationality — they wouldn't feel
any scruples about making a profit, even if they have
to destroy the national heritage to do so;
3. Misuse of rank or position: When they lack any
accurate sense of justice, they will attempt to make
illegal dealings look legal or outlaw legal things, if
it suits them to do so.
3. Losing a sense of responsibility for economic fairness
in society at large: If friends lack self-discipline and don't
fulfil the duties towards one another prescribed by the
Lord Buddha, the third level of disaster which will happen
to them is that they will lose their sense of responsibility
for economic fairness in society at large — this loss giving
rise (at the minimum) to the following three undesirable
symptoms:
I. Corruption: When false view and selfishness get
the better of their thinking, they will worship money
alone — because they understand that the more
money they have, the more power they can gain.
Money will be the means that they can secure the
any position of authority they hold (through bribery).
EFTA00286521
2. Implicated in dealings with the Six Roads to Ruin:
When money becomes important above all else, they
will have no scruples about taking shortcuts to find
it. Of course the most profitable forms of trading are
dealing in drugs, forgeries, arms smuggling or
casinos — the fact that they are illegal or exploit the
poorest sectors of society — considerations which
mean nothing to those so far alienated from thoughts
of fairness in economics;
3. Betrays homeland: if such people find themselves
in positions of legislation, because of selfishness and
False View, if they can make a `quick buck' from
foreign investors, they will not think twice about
waiving laws which formerly protected their country
from foreign exploitation.
The problems of lack of association with the Wise can
be summarized down to two main points:
I. Obvious social problems: In countries such as
Thailand, social problems which are out of hand are
high-level corruption, partiality of the legal system,
degeneration into vice and widespread prostitution;
2. Coven social problems: The covert social problems
exist in the form of False Friends in positions of
influence — whether it be positions in politics, the civil
service, government utilities — who have less than
scrupulous behaviour. Unfortunately what the people
see of such public figures — an image of respectability
and chivalry — often belies illicit dealings behind the
scenes. Such false friendship has its origins in
undisciplined parental upbringing, undisciplined
schooling and eventually, having become a fool,
seeking the company of other fools is the final nail in
the coffin of true friendship.
Possible solutions to these problems are:
I. In the short term are to avoid voting those with the
character traits of 'false friends' into positions of
authority;
2. In the long term are to use the nets of 'sixteen
characteristics of true friends' and 'sixteen char-
acteristics of false friends' to identify and replac
ing the weaknesses in yourself with virtues starting
with yourself — associating with the wise so that
their good virtues can brush off on you too.
F.I Inner teacher, outer teacher
Broadly speaking, there am two categories of the wise — the
outer wise ones and the inner wise ones. The outer wise ones can
be subdivided into the wise who are truly wise and those who are
not truly wise. The truly wise are start with the Lord Buddha, the
arahants and those who have attained the various levels of
Buddhist sainthood. The wise who am not truly wise arc those
who arc as wise as or wiser than us. Examples of these are monks
who truly train themselves in meditation. Even though such
monks may not be arahants, they come up to the standard of a
wise man. You should seek him out for association and
familiarize yourself with his virtues. You can only gain from such
association. As for your own parents, given that we arc their chil-
dren,
we ought to do our best to associate with them.
Sometimes we encounter difficulties however. Sometimes our
parents have the character of fools. If this should be the case then
we have the duty to live in the same household, but with the
utmost care not to let those foolish habits rub off on ourselves. If
your parents drink alcohol, don't go prohibiting them from such
behaviour. It is not your place to do so. However, at the same
time you shouldn't go joining them in their drinking. If your
mother loves playing poker, it's no good telling her to give up.
Let her carry on with her gambling — but don't go joining in
with her. Even though we know these arc the habits of a fool,
they arc our own mother and father. We can't just ditch them. We
must carry on living in the same household while taking care not
to be infected by their foolish habits.
The wise also extend to our friends and relatives who
are a good example to us by their behaviour. Even if
they might not be right all the time, or they may not be
as wise as an arahant, to associate with them is still to
our benefit.
In the case of associating with the wise who are not yet
perfect, the Buddha taught that we should
EFTA00286522
concentrate on observing only their good points and
mimic only these good behaviours. If that person has
his faults, don't waste your time criticising them for
these, because for as long as one hasn't come to an end
of all defilements, faults and weaknesses will always
remain. Don't go looking for peoples' faults. Look for
their strengths and make the effort to instil these
strengths in ourself. In the end we will be like an ocean
full of all types of virtue. Don't go letting someone's
minor fault blind you to all their virtues. If you are only
interested in peoples' faults, by the time you have
picked out everyone's weaknesses, there will be only
one good person left in the world — yourself.
Thus the wise in the outside world are of two types: the
permanently wise who have rid themselves of all
defilements and the sporadically wise who still have
defilements remaining. Both types of wise ones are
beneficial to associate with.
You may have noticed that sometimes when we think
of doing something evil there will be a little voice
inside that warns us not to do it. Have you wondered
where that little voice inside comes from? Usually we
cannot see whose voice it is, but if we meditate until
our mind is much clearer, we will be able to see the
wise one inside who is the owner of the voice.
Information, whether it be in the form of knowledge as
a voice or the content of a dream or sixth sense, is
transferred down the line from deep inside ourselves,
like a baton between the runners of a relay race.
It is for this reason that we must do two things— try to
find the wise in the outside world and find the best
ways to associate with them. If we know that anyone is
a good example then we should make sure we get to
know that person. That way the good character that
makes that person a wise one will begin to brush of on
us as well. Secondly, once we have seen the nature of
those who are a good example to follow, we should
start to cultivate an inner self which has the same good
qualities so that the self which is wise will manifest
itself inside
ourselves. If we already have an inner self that is wise,
even if we don't meet any more wise people ever again,
it will not matter to us, because we have ow inner
source of wisdom from which we can draw the
knowledge of our inner teacher.
H. I Metaphor: Leaves wrapping a perfumed fish
A parable used by the Lord Buddha is that of the leaves
wrapping a perfumed fish taking on the same perfume
as the fish itself.
K2 Red-Bearded Erecutioner saved by Association
with the Wise (Dhitii.203)
TambadAEhika who was a former thief had served the
king as the public executioner for fifty-five years; and
had just retired from that post. One day, he went to the
river for a bath, intending to take some specially
prepared food on his return home. As he was about to
take the food, Venerable SAriputta, who had just arisen
from sustained absorption in concentration [jhAna
samApatti], stood at his door for almsfood. Seeing the
monk, TambadAEhika thought to himself, "Throughout
my life, I have been executing thieves; now I should
offer this food to the monk."
So, he invited SAriputta
to come in and respectfully offered the food.
After the meal, SAriputta taught him the Dhamma, but
TambadAEhika could not pay attention, because he was
extremely disturbed as he recollected his past career as
an executioner. This mental disturbance did not allow
him to concentrate properly. SAriputta knew this, and in
order to put him in a proper frame of mind, he asked
TambadAEhika tactfully whether he killed the thieves
because he wished to kill them out of anger or hate, or
simply because he was ordered to do so. TambadAEhika
answered that he was ordered to kill them by the king
and that he had no ill will or wish to kill. 'If that is the
case,' SAriputta asked, 'What wrong did you do?' Thus
re-assured, his mind became calmer and he requested
SAriputta to continue his sermon. As he listened to the
EFTA00286523
Dhamma attentively, his mind became tranquil and he
developed the virtues of patience and understanding.
After the discourse, TambadAEhika accompanied
SAriputta for some distance and then returned home.
On his way home he died due to an accident.
When the Buddha came to the congregation of the
hhikkhus in the evening, they informed him about the
death of TambadAEhika. When asked where
TambadAEhika was reborn, the Buddha
told them that although TambadAEhika had committed
evil deeds throughout his life, because he
comprehended the Dhamma, he was reborn in the
Tusita deva world. The hhikkhus wondered how such
an evil-doer could have such great benefit after
listening to the Dhamma just once. To them the Buddha
said that the length of a discourse is of no consequence,
for one single sentence of the Dhamma, correctly
understood can produce much benefit.
EFTA00286524
Blessing Three: Expressing
Respect to Those Worthy of
Respect
A. INTRODUCTION
A.1 People Differentiated by their discretion
As seen in the previous blessings, the brightness of a person's
future relies on his ability to judge the difference between
good and evil. If his judgement is faulty, there is no way he
can make a success out of his life. Even though people may
look superficially similar, their standards of judgement can be
so different. As human beings we are born equal — we all
have a pair of hands and ten fingers — but some people use
their hands to perform works that are useful to society while
others think that their hands will become more famous as fists
and go around punching up the neighbours for a living. In this
Blessing we look at the third of three major influences on our
development of sound discretion
— having the right sort of "role model" in our hearts.
This blessing doesn't imply that we model ourselves on
anyone or anything at all — but if we want to develop
sound discretion we need to model ourselves (recognize
and pay respect to) only those worthy of our respect.
A.2 Effect of one's "hero" on one's discretion
Hearing such terms as "paying respect", "expressing
respect" or "people worthy of respect", the casual
reader might come to the premature conclusion that this
blessing is irrelevant to our day and age. However, if
we rephrase what we mean in modem terms, asking
"Who is the hero of your heart — which celebrity do
you model yourself on
or dream of emulating?", the pertinence of this blessing
will become much more immediate.
When we are children and the horizons of our experience do
not extend beyond the walls of our house, maybe our own
parents represent all that we want to achieve in our lives. We
try to play at being "grown-up" like our parents, imitating
them in our play. If we are exposed to a good parental
example, our idea of what we perceive as normal or ethical
will develop quite accurately from an early age. Ilowever, if,
for example, parents lie to their children often or beat them
out of anger, then that comes to be what the child perceives to
be the standard of "justice" in life.
During one's teen years, when one's horizons extend
beyond the home, the influence of constructive or
destructive role models becomes stronger and stronger.
These role models are over and above the influence of
good or bad friends as studied in the previous two
blessings.
Look at some of the role models celebrities set for the
youth of today and you can imagine some of the
problems facing our impressionable youth of today.
Supposing you plan to model yourself on Vincent Van
Gogh, Kurt Cobain, Marilyn Monroe, Janis Joplin,
Dylan Thomas, Jimi Hendrix, Elvis Presley, Jim
Morrison, Keith Moon, F. Scott Fitzgerald, Ernest
Hemingway or Brian Jones all of whom killed
themselves at an early age, you might come to the
conclusion that truly creative people are "too beautiful
for this world". You might come
EFTA00286525
to the conclusion that creative writers drank because
they had to — or it was the "pressure of fame". Or that
killing yourself is how to earn fame or emotionally
blackmail others. We can overlook the insecure,
grotesquely boring reality of these peoples' lives. We
can rationalize away the brutal and banal nature of their
addictions. We can forgive our heroes and we come to
be able to forgive ourselves as well. It gives us an
instant excuse to be irresponsible and indecent. We can
say we're too beautiful for this world too. We can act
like drugged children, crash our lives and drop out.
The truth about someone like Vincent Van Gogh is that when
he painted he was beautiful, but in other matters he was not.
He was always encouraging his emotions to work their dark
magic. It's true that he ought to be admired while he had his
paintbrush in his hand, but to be admired for his whole
sorrowful life and to make a legend out of it is to confuse
oneself. The problem for us as beginners on the initial steps of
the Manual of Peace, as debutante only just beginning to pick
up an inkling of what is good for our spiritual development
and what is not, we don't yet have the ability to distinguish
between the creative and destructive aspects of someone's
behaviour — therefore, when you are starting out on your
sojourn of spiritual discovery, it's better to choose a role
model who you can rely upon as an exemplar in all aspects of
life.
If you can choose a reliable role model for yourself:
If you ask yourself what you automatically do, when
you have a "hero" in your heart, on analysis, you find
that you devote all your waking thoughts to them. We
put their picture on the wall. When we speak about
them, we only speak praise of them. we take every
opportunity to learn their opinions and share them.
Given the opportunity we try to meet with them and
imitate what they do in their lives. Some people even
go to the lengths of dress like them. All these are
random components of an attitude we call "respect".
Many of the behaviours are ways of "paying respect" or
"expressing respect".
B. I What do we mean by "respect"?
Respect means the attitude of looking for the positive aspects
of a person or an object and the effort to instill oneself with
those same virtues. Such respect, in context of the Manual of
Peace is for the aim of furthering one's spiritual development
— it must not have any ulterior motive. It mustn't be like a
judo player who raises someone up (in his own self esteem by
flattering them) only to drop him onto the floor more easily.
Some bosses blindly believe their subordinates' flattery is
respect to the extent that they overlook the real state of affairs
and end up getting fired. This latter case of expressing respect
does not come from a mind of pure innocence which expects
or demands nothing material in return.
you will accelerate your acquisition of Right Ware respect arises in response to someone's virtues.
and Wisdom.
Something else which may look like respect but which
you will become less vulnerable to the influenft Sif fact an imposter is the intention to help someone in
the expectation of gaining something material in return.
you will more easily be able to avoid associatigarst comes the flattery, then comes the unrefusable
with fools
request for this or that favour. Boyfriend praises
•
you will facilitate the spread of virtue in societv_zirifriend, saying how pretty she is, because he wants
and the world.
her to love him. He has an ulterior motive to get
•
it will prevent you from becoming self-centredar ething in return. He's not interested per se in either
arrogant about your own virtues.
her goodness or her prettiness.
•
it will facilitate the development of mindfulness
that is the precursor of wisdom.
•
it will add to your enthusiasm for self-devel-
opment
fools
B.2 What do we mean by "expressing respect"?
Expressing Respect means any polite and inten
EFTA00286526
tional action towards someone or something, both in
their presence or behind their back, that is the device
that demonstrates that one is really recollecting the
virtues of that person or thing.
R3 Purpose of Respect
The reason behind paying homage to those worthy of homage is
an extension of the reason for associating with the wise. We have
already said that we associate with the wise in the hope that they
will help us to develop accurate discretion in things concerning
virtue. It is to help us overcome the weakness in our make-up,
that we tend too easily to forget all the good and valuable things
taught to us by our teachers and masters and parents or the mo-
nastic community, the Lord Buddha, or from books we read.
When you are taught how to meditate for half-an-hour per day (or
to do any other good deeds), however, your memory doesn't seem
to be so reliable. The first day, you sit for meditation for exactly
half-an-hour — no more, no less. On the second day, you sit for
only fifteen minutes — well, that's better than nothing. On the
third thy, you think that while you am chanting is actually a sort
of meditation, so five minutes of true meditation is enough. On
the fourth day it is especially humid, so you think that chanting is
enough, no meditation today — after all, thousands of other
people don't meditate, and they seem no worse off for it. By the
fifth day you have entirely forgotten how to meditate for half an
hour. It is for the reason that doing good deeds is so easy to forget
that is the real reason for the need to pay homage.
On the contrary, when it comes to being devious, or doing
mischievous things, we remember the from the first time
we're taught and never need to be taught again for the rest
of our lives! We never forget how to play poker. We never
forget how to shuffle a deck of cards.
The real reasons behind paying homage areas follows:
I. To give us a firm connection with the virtues of that
person. Connecting up ow thoughts with a person of
virtue will elevate our own minds to the higher level of
virtue of that person.
2. To practice expressing virtues so that in the future we
might have the chance to gain a real appreciation of the
virtues of that person. Whether we are an adult or a
child, if ow appreciation of the real depth of virtue of a
does not really do justice to the depth of their virtue,
expressing homage can help us to appreciate it. When
we were only five or six years old and our parents took
us to the temple they would make sure that we paid
respect to the Buddha images. For the child, he cannot
see beyond the clay or the brass of the image and might
wonder what all the fuss is about. A child that is so
young can have no appreciation of the real depth of the
virtues of the Lord Buddha. Taken to the home of their
old uncle, they are told to pay respect to their uncle.
The child cannot distinguish the goodness of their
uncle's character, but pays respect because he has been
told to. At school, the child is told to pay respect to
their teachers. The child might not be able to tell the
real virtue of the teacher, because the child's ability to
comprehend is only limited. However, sometime in the
future when we become so used to expressing our
respect that we become used to it, the thought will
eventually occur to us to look for the reason.
B.4 Three Types of Bowing
Sometimes people confuse respect with expressing
respect. However, if you express respect when your
attitude is wrong you will not succeed in furthering
your spiritual progress. Consider the following
examples:
1. Bowing out of obsequiousness: Some people bow
just because everyone else does. Usually they bow
reluctantly. They have no attitude of respect in their
mind. Therefore, all they get for their efforts is a stiff
feeling in their muscles.
Z Bowing out of peer-pressure: Some people only
show respect in order to please the person they pay
respect to, so that they can ask favours from that
person, often for things which are not entirely honest or
noble.
3. Bowing in search of wisdom: This refers to those
who have an attitude of respect and who also
EFTA00286527
express their respect with the determination to
practice themselves all the virtues exemplified by
the object of their respect. An example of the sort of
attitude in mind of someone who benefits from
expressing respect is — supposing we bow three
times to express respect towards the Buddha:
L When we bow the first time: to reflect on the
supreme wisdom of the Buddha which allowed him
to see the existence of suffering, know the origin and
the cessation of suffering and find a Path to the
Cessation of Suffering — wisdom arising from the
Buddha's extended meditation mind until his mind
had become sufficiently clear and bright to eradicate
all defilements of the mind. Following his example,
we should also determinedly meditate until we can
achieve the same wisdom as that of the Buddha.
1. When we bow the second time: to reflect on the
supreme compassion of the Lord Buddha that
instead of just keeping his wisdom to himself, he
spent all his life teaching Dhamma to others so that
they could become enlightened in his footsteps.
Following his example, we should also find ways of
being generous as a way of expressing our
compassion to others.
3. When we bow the third time: to reflect on the
supreme purity of the body, speech and mind of the
Lord Buddha cultivated through his extended
practice of self-discipline. Following his example,
we should also find ways of finding better ways to
extend our own self-discipline so that we too can
attain full purity of mind.
B.5 Two sorts of Respect
However, all four of these can be summarized under
just two headings, that is:
L Homage through gifts: [AmisapEjA]: this refers to
all material forms of paying homage — whether it be
putting your palms together in a gesture of respect or
even speaking words of praise about a person.
2. Homage through practice: [paEipatipEjA] this
means paying homage by doing as one is taught
— for example, we pay respect to the Lord Bud
dha by doing as he taught. Thus, in practice, expressing
respect has two major components.
B.5.1 Relative importance
When we pay respect to the Lord Buddha, we should
emphasise homage through practice, while homage
through gifts should play only a supporting role. As for
paying respect to teachers who are still concerned with
worldly matters (ie. king, parents, teachers, elders and
boss, we have to emphasise homage through gifts) while
homage though practice plays only a supporting role.
To give an example, if we are to meet up with our teacher
and when we meet up with them all we have for them is
the words, - I have put into practice everything you have
taught me". This would hardly impress the teacher. It
would have been appropriate to have some sort of gift to
give the teacher as well.
Others go abroad and on the way back thinkof their
teacher. They don't know what to get as a present for
the teacher and so they get a bottle of liquor. In the end
the result is that the teacher and the pupil sit down and
drink liquor together. The more they drink, the more
irritated they feel and end up fighting one another.
When it gets to this point, that gift can hardly be
counted as a token of respect any more. It is an
unwelcome gift resulting from false view.
The person worthy of respect, in its simplest terms is
the wise one (as defined in the previous Blessing). The
wise one in this context is someone whose status or
position or level of existence is so high that it would be
completely inappropriate for us to associate with them
on equal terms or as peers. Examples of such people
include:
Cl Buddha
The Lord Buddha (who is truly wise),
EFTA00286528
C1.1 Three worthy qualities of the Buddha
For example, why we consider the Lord Buddha to be
worthy of respect, and we find that it is because:
I. His wisdom is so great that he could singlehandedly
attain enlightenment.
2. His Compassion is so great that He sacrificed the
rest of his life to teach the way for others to reach
enlightenment as he had done.
3. His body, speech and mind were so pure (because of
the immaculateness with which he had kept the
Precepts) that no one else in the world can compare —
and for that reason we hold him in the highest of
respect.
To begin with we might not be able to appreciate the
degree of his virtue, but after paying respect more and
more, it makes our own mind more refined, gives us the
ability to consider things in a constructive way and in
the end, opening to us the innate wisdom that will allow
us to appreciate that virtue. In any place, there are many
things that are worthy of respect and many more things
that are not worthy of respect. Thus, when deciding
about the type of people who are worthy of respect, the
subject of this Blessing, it is important to be able to
distinguish one thing from the other.
C2 The monastic community and other clergy
The monastic community [Salgha] (who can be divided
into those who are devoid of all defilement [ariyasalgha]
such as the arahants, the non-returners [anagAmi], the
once-returners [sakatagAmi] and the stream-enterers
[sotApana]; and the general monastic community who are
striving to train themselves towards an end of all
defilements [sammutisa]gha]. Although the latter
may
not yet have purged themselves of all defilements, they
are abundant in virtue to a degree that it is innappropriate
to associate with them as if they were ow equals. If we
associate with them, we should treat them as ow
superiors — i.e. with respect — at all times. Monks or
clergy worthy of respect are those who exemplify, teach
and discern virtue for us by fulfilling the following six
duties:
1.
restrain their congregation from
Aril;
encourage them to establish themselves in
virtue: these two responsibilities are also the domain
of parents and teachers;
3.
minister to them in kindness: this means
spreading loving-kindness towards the congregation
without exception for their happiness. They might also
visit their supporters, together with their monastic
fellows, in order to give those congregation members
the chance to hear Dhamma teachings and have the
opportunity to practice to practice generosity;
4.
teach them new or beneficial things: One of
the most important functions of the clergy is to en-
courage study of the spiritual teachings amongst their
congregation. Monks should have a large repertoire of
teachings to give to the congregation, teaching without
repeating themselves, so that the congregation can have
a broad knowledge of Dhamma knowledge, reinforcing
their Right View and ability to be a teacher to them-
selves [yonisomanasikAra] in relation to finding the
highest happiness in their lives;
5. clarify things they already know: if monks give
Dhamma teachings they have already give to a
particular group from the congregation, they should
enlarge the subject in more detail than before, giving
additional meaning to materials or explaining in further
detail how the Dhamma can be applied for problem
solving in everyday life;
6. show them the way to heaven: this monastic duty is
particularly special in the system of the `Six Directions'
because no-one in any of the other social groups can do
it in the monks' place. Those who are able to enter
heaven must be those who live their lives in accordance
with the noble code of Self-Discipline.
This group consists of all forms of clergy who have an
exclusively spiritual (rather than material) aim in life —
namely monks in Buddhism, or priests, pastors or
ministers for other religions. We hold them in respect,
because they maintain their status through their high
level of virtue. In conclusion, the responsibility of the
clergy consists of training the
EFTA00286529
lay congregation to become Wise Ones or virtuous
people — a noble duty indeed! Monks who are able to
practice all six of these duties to their completion are of
inestimable value to society and the world — they are
worthy of respect both by men and angels alike.
C.3 Virtuous monarchs
Monarchs worthy of respect are those established in the
Tenfold Virtues of a Monarch;
CA Our Parents
Our Parents and upstanding members of society. Our
parents are wise ones. We should treat them with
respect. Anything less would be inappropriate.
C.5 Our Teachers
Teachers and masters established in right view. In this
context we should mention the two identifying features
of a teacher's duties, both of which he needs to fulfil in
order to qualify for the respect of his students. These
two duties are:
I. The duty to explain (i.e. teach a subject in theory)
2. The duty to exemplify (especially the moral usage
of the subject he teaches)
If he fails to perform either of these duties his teaching is
no more than daylight robbery of his pupils. If he gives
good explanations but his personal behaviour is no
example for his students to follow (for example he teaches
'do as I say not what I do' and tells the class that liquor is
evil while spending all his spare time inebriated at the bar,
he is nothing more than a mercenery teacher.
If he both explains the theory well and is a good
example to his students, he is a person worthy of
respect.
C.6 Virtuous employer
Virtuous employers are also worthy of respect. It is
hard to find bosses with virtue, so when we find one,
we should not hesitate to pay them respect. We may
still be unable to be as virtuous as them, so we ought to
pay them respect, in order that their
virtues might never be far from our minds — instead of
being tempted to do something devious, we will be less
tempted because we feel ashamed after the seeing the
good example set by our boss. Also we will be more
ashamed that anything we do wrong might reflect badly
on our boss's good reputation. This is the value of
having a virtuous boss. It keeps us on the straight and
narrow until such time that we have reliable discretion
for ourselves.
There are certain classes of objects identified by the
Lord Buddha as worthy of respect, and these are objects
associated with people worthy of respect i.e. the Lord
Buddha, the Saigha, monarchs, parents, teachers and
bosses. There are two categories of such objects,
pagodas (and their contents) and teachings:
D.I Pagodas
D.I.I Four Types of Pagoda
The Buddha enumerated four types of pagoda worthy of
respect:
I. A relic pagoda: this is a pagoda containing the relics
of a Buddha, a paccekalmddha. an arahant or a
universal monarch. After the cremation of a truly
virtuous person there are pearl-like relics left behind in
the ashes. In keeping with the teaching of the Buddha,
these are collected by the faithful and are paid homage
to, by Buddhists, not only with candles and incense, but
by enshrining them in small pagodas.
2. Paribhoga Cetiya: These include the Four Holy Sites
connected with the life of the Lord Buddha: the place
where He was born, enlightened, where He gave His
first sermon and where He passed away into
Parinirvana. The Lord Buddha called these four places
His Paribhoga Cetiya and taught that all Buddhists of
following generations should visit these holy sites if
they had the chance because it would awaken them to
the urgent need to get down to practice. Many people
who have been to visit the Holy Sites have discovered
that their inspiration to practice has
EFTA00286530
is strengthened from the feeling of going back to a
time when they were in the presence of the Lord
Buddha himself. This is the reason why these four
sites are worthy of worship.
3. Dhamma Cetiya: This is a Cetiya that contains
Dhamma teachings such as books of the Tipitaka or
other Scriptures.
4 Uddesika Cetiya: This is a Cetiya that contains
Buddha Images or images of His Noble Disciples.
Objects worthy of respect in this category also include
the requisites belonging to monks
— whether it be robes or bowl, all of the monks'
requisites arc worthy of respect.
D.2 Dhamma Teachings
A fifth sort of object worthy of respect are spiritual teachings
and their sources. These may include the Teachings of the
Lord Buddha, of members of the monastic community, of
kings, of our parents and elders, of our teachers and masters,
of our boss and the teachings of the wise with whom we
associate. The teachings of all six categories of the wise men-
tioned above are the manifestation of the virtue of those
people and should never be taken in vain. Making a mockery
of such teachings will undermine our earnestness in putting
those teachings into practice. If we lack earnestness in putting
the teachings into practice, we reduce our chance of ever un-
derstanding those teachings. In the absence of understanding,
there remains only ignorance and false view.
Thus any of the objects mentioned above should not be
used for mockery or for fun. To treat these things
without reverence robs them of their sanctity and when
we come to study them we will overlook their depth or
subtlety. An example of this might be the man who
goes to receive Five Precepts from the monk at the
temple and keeps the Precepts so well for the first few
days. Later he joins in with one of his friends makes
fun of the Precepts and says,"Oh the Precepts? Aren't
they for keeping one for each day of the week and
weekends off'?" Even if he still keeps his Precepts, the
effect of these words is to gradually undermine the
man's inspiration to keep them.
The same principle goes for photographs or pictures of the
Buddha, of monks, of the king, of our parents or teachers.
Such photographs should not be left lying about or used
without reverence. Chanting books shouldn't be left lying
about either or folded up and shoved in the back pocket of
one's trousers. They shouldn't be put down on a dusty
surface and other things should not be placed on top of
them.
In conclusion, those worthy of respect are the wise who
are established in virtue, or those who by their social
standing are too high up for us to be able to associate
with personally or as peers. Apart from these six
categories of person, objects which should be treated
with respect include the requisites they use as a way of
recollecting the virtues of that person. Even though that
person may already have passed away, treating their
belongings with respect will help us to maintain
high-mindedness and Right View concerning that
person.
D.3 Educational Objects
Also we shouldn't forget that all books which contain
Dhamma should be treated with respect. The ancients
would be very particular even about the notebooks in
which we have taken note of Dhamma sermons. They
forbade us from throwing such notebooks, stepping
over them, putting them in low down places or tearing
out pages — because all of these things would
constitute disrespect to the teachings themselves. If we
were to lack respect towards the Dhamma, then when
we come to consider Dhamma Teachings for which the
meaning is very subtle, we will be unable to fathom the
meaning and our understanding of the Dhamma will be
destroyed and we will be left with nothing more than
our own ignorance.
D.4 Objects not worthy of respect
Correspondingly, we must be careful not to pay respect
to things not worthy of respect. In brief, there are four
categories of things we should avoid idolising or
paying respect to:
1. People not worthy of Respect: This means not
idolizing fools, and not supporting them or praising
them — no matter how high in rank they might be.
EFTA00286531
2. Objects not worthy of respect: This means not
idolizing pictures, sculptures, works, possessions or
tools of fools.
3. Objects which lead to foolishness: This means not
idolizing things like pictures of models, singers or
sportsmen who lack virtue or advertising for "roads to
ruin" such as alcohol. We shouldn't use these sort of
things to decorate our homes.
4. Objects which lead to gullabilhy: This means not
idolizing things which promote superstition such as
"holy trees", "holy mountains", "spirit houses" etc.
E.I Expressing respect with body, speech and mind
Respect can be paid through the channels of body,
speech or mind.
I. Physical Respect: Physically paying respect means
the various polite manners that we demonstrate towards
someone in their presence, such as standing up when
they come into the room, or sitting politely when in
front of them. Even if you are not in their presence, you
should still show physical respect towards those worthy
of virtue even if you are not in their presence but are in
the presence of their photograph, their sculpted image
— such as a Buddha Image or a photograph of your
teaching master. We should show our respect by not
pointing our feet towards such an image, and even if we
are lying down to sleep — pointing our head towards
the image instead of our feet;
2. Verbal Respect: Homage through the channel of
speech includes the speaking, chanting or singing of
praises of one worthy of homage, rather than
gossipping maliciously about them;
3. Mental Respect: Homage through the channel of the
mind means recollecting the teachings of one worthy of
homage to the degree that they inspire us. We might
recollect what that person has taught us in the way of
good deeds. We might also consider the good character
and virtues exemplified (but not taught) by that person.
Both of these are homage through the channel of the
mind;
£2 How to Express Respect
Many people misunderstand paying respect as bundling
together a lotus, candles and incense, laying it before
the object of respect and bowing down three times.
Paying respect in this way is not incorrect, but it is not
the whole story. Paying respect that is complete in all
respects must exhibit four factors:
I. Physical token of respect [sakkAra]: This refers to a
gift which is an expression of respect. It is something
we must prepare in advance and which is presented
during the act of paying respect. Such a token of respect
differs for different situations and different categories
of persons worthy of respect — for example, flowers,
incense and candles are worthy tokens of respect for
paying respect to the Buddha, monks or teachers.
Clothes or bedclothes might be more worthy tokens of
respect for your parents. Neither of these tokens of
respect are suitable as the sort of gift you might take
with you when visiting distinguished persons of social
standing. Nor would they be suitable as the sort of gift
you bring back with you for your friends when you
have been away on holiday. Even money can be a token
of respect. If your teacher has been putting in extra
hours out of the kindness of his heart, giving up his
time to give you tutorials at home, giving him money as
a gift would not be out of place, and in this respect
would be considered a token of respect, not a payment.
Another consideration for tokens of respect is that they
should be prepared in advance. To leave a bucket of cut
flowers, no matter how big the bucket is, in the middle
of the main temple pavillion would hardly be
considered an act of respect. Any token of respect
should be prepared with care and precision and be both
clean and well organized.
2. Gesture of respect [vandanA]: this refers to gestures
which express respect such as bowing or prostration or
praise or chanting praise. Morning and evening
chanting can be counted as vandanA. Even recollection
of what one has been taught by the wise or one's
teacher can be
EFTA00286532
counted as vandanA.
3. Attitude of respect [mAnanA]: This refers to an
attitude of respect. Respect consists of the stems 're'
which means again and 'spect' which means to
re-examine a person (for their good points). Given that
all people except the Buddha are made up of a mixture
of both good and bad then we have to look for the good
points in people. Taking these good points, apart from
noticing these good points, part of respect is to praise
them for these good points and use them as a good
example to model ourselves upon.
4. Concern for the object of respect [garulcAra]: this
refers to an attitude of concern about the wellbeing of
the person who is worthy of respect and recollection of
the good deeds and virtues of that person.
All of these four components comprise the way of
paying respect.
E.3 Consequences of Not Paying Respect to those
worthy of homage
If those held in high respect do not behave in a fitting
way, many sorts of harm arc brought on the individual,
interpersonal and social levels. To take the clergy as an
example, if members of the monastic community are
undisciplined and do not cherish their congregation
according to the advice of the Buddha, the harm that
will come to the congregation can be concluded on
three levels:
I. Losing a sense of responsibility for their own
human dignity: If clergy lack self-discipline and don't
fulfil their duties towards their congregation as
prescribed by the Lord Buddha, the first level of
disaster which will happen to them is that the
congregation will lose their sense of responsibility for
their own human dignity — this loss giving rise (at the
minimum)
to
the
following
three
undesirable
symptoms:
I. Breakdown of self-discipline: Society will degen-
erate to the point where the majority of people do
not keep the Five Precepts and do not even
understand what keeping the Precepts means. This
will increase the incidence of so
ciety of people taking advantage of each other.
When taking advantage of each other becomes the
the norm, especially for those in positions of
authority, the effects will have repurcussions on a
national scale — therefore, citizens must unite in
preventing those who don't respect the Five
Precepts from being put in positions of power;
2. Those seeking ordination are of low quality:
Low-quality ordinands burden their preceptors with
problems — it is hard to train them at all. If clergy
are unable to develop purity of body, speech and
mind, they will undermine the existing faith of the
congregation — ultimately destroying the religion;
3. Transcendental attainment becomes becomes in-
creasingly inaccessible: The highest aim of those
who ordain is to attain Nirvana. However, if those
who ordain are of low quality and are difficult to
train, there will be a continuous deterioration in the
capability of the monastic community to the point
where they will no longer be able to reach any sort
of transcendental attainment. When there are no re-
ligious exemplars to look up to, the congregation
will become more and more firmly entrenched in
False View — more and more ignorant of Dhamma
teachings, self-discipline
— with some of the most serious repurcussions for
social chaos;
Losing a sense of responsibility for the human dignity
of others: If clergy lack self-discipline and don't fulfil the
duties towards their congregation as prescribed by the
Lord Buddha, the second level of disaster which will
happen to them is that the congregation will lose their
sense of responsibility for the human dignity of others
— this loss giving rise (at the minimum) to the
following three undesirable symptoms:
I. Verbal abuse of clergy and monks: Once the con-
gregation no longer realize the value to society of
clergy and monks, misunderstanding the duty and
lifestyle of the clergy, the public will abuse the
clergy shamelessly (as is happening currently in
Thailand);
EFTA00286533
2. Lack offinancial support for clergy and monks:
Swayed by the often unjustified abuse of clergy in
the media, the faith of the public deteriorates, and
with it the support with which they should provide
the clergy — religions such as Buddhism can only
survive through the voluntary support of the
congregation, and without it, there will soon be no
clergy left, and consequently no-one to perpetuate
the religion;
3. Congregation is left without any true refuge:
Having dismantled their religion by their own ne-
glect, when the public find themselves in dire straits,
they will be without a refuge, lacking the ability to
be a teacher to themselves, they will resort to
superstition or animism.
3. Losing a sense of responsibility for economic
fairness in society at large: If clergy lack
self-discipline and don't fulfil the duties towards their
congregation as prescribed by the Lord Buddha, the
third level of disaster which will happen to them is that
the congregation will lose their sense of responsibility
for economic fairness in society at large — this loss
giving rise (at the minimum) to the following three
undesirable symptoms:
1. Total enfatuation with the Six Roads to Ruin: In a
society of deteriorating morals, it will become more
and more common for people either to eke out their
living via, or be enslaved by the consequences (such
as debt and disease) of Roads to Ruin such as drugs,
gambling, prostitution, entertainment and
underground lotteries.
2. Desecration of religious property and establish-
ments: The Roads to Ruin are part of the vicious
circle of poverty. Some people try to alleviate their
poverty by theft — and religious property is an easy
target of plunder. Some encroach on temple grounds
in pursuit of their livelihood. In Thailand this
practice is becoming more and more widespread,
especially because it has been legally condoned by
biased legislators;
3. Embezzlement of religious donations: Some peo
pie like to extract some sort of `commission'
from the funds they manage to raise for the
temple (in accordance with the phrase "half for
the temple, half for the temple committee'!) In
the present day, however, some legislators try to
go further than this by giving the government the
right to control temple funds directly!
Problems concerning not paying respect to those
worthy of respect can be summarized down to two
main points:
I. Obvious social problems: Easily seen is public
deterioration in morality as a result of ignorance of
virtue. Such people like to say they have lost interest in
virtue because they see so many examples of hypocrisy.
For the same reasons they withhold financial support
for spiritual causes and some go further, overtly making
legislative changes necessary for the dismantling of the
religious establishment;
2. Coven social problems: The covert social problems
mostly originate from the hypocrisy amongst those who
should be behaving as exemplars of virtue. Considered
with wise reflection, the problems might be analyzed as
such:
I. Good exemplars are sometimes unable to pass on
their knowledge to others because
I. the public are not interested to learn from the
clergy— all they want are the material trappings
of spirituality and virtue such as holy water and
amulets;
2. the public undervalue the teachings on virtue
they receive because they think they are already
highly qualified in academic subjects — so
thinking, they consider their ability in vocational
subjects makes earning money more important
than knowing spiritual teachings.
In order to illustrate the results of paying respect to
those worthy of respect here are five examples, the
second of which is an example of homage through
gifts:
EFTA00286534
F.1 Metaphor: Small sapling with supporting stake
When a new grown tree is still a flimsy sapling, it
needs a supporting stake to protect it against strong
winds — otherwise it will be blown down or torn up by
its roots. Similarly, one who hopes for spiritual
progress in one's life needs to express respect to those
worthy of respect — to keep a place for those people in
one's heart — so that those people can be a guiding
light and an example, and a protection against False
View and unwholesomeness which might otherwise
reappear in one's life.
R2 Ex Sumana the Garland-Maker
In the time of the Lord Buddha, within the walls of the palace
the workers divided themselves up into different sections and
one of the sections was specifically for flower arranging. The
section head was called Sumana and his duty was to arrange
flowers to decorate the palace, to decorate the throne and even
decorate the royal bed chamber of the king, to give all of
these places a delightful fragrance. Sumana fulfilled his duty
to the satisfaction of all in the palace every day, year in year
out without ever slipping up.
One day, in the season where flowers were the hardest to
find, Sumana travelled to every part of the city and
wherever there were flowers to be bought, he would buy
them all. No-one else in the city had any flowers left to use
for themselves. Every last flower in the city had to be used
for the decoration of the palace.
Even though Sumana had exclusive rights to all the
flowers in the city, because the dry season had caused a
drought, he could hardly find any flower
— even food was scarce let alone flowers. One day the
flowers were so scarce that in the whole of the city all
Sumana could find were eight (coconut shell) measures
of jasmine flowers. Really, this wasn't enough to
decorate the palace, but it was better than nothing.
That day, as Sumana was bringing the eight measures
of jasmine flowers to the palace, he met with the Lord
Buddha along the way. The Lord Buddha was on
almsround. Sumana regularly attended the Buddha's
sermons but he had never really had the
chance to make a decent offering to the Buddha, partly
because of his poverty and partly because his faith was
not very profound.
That day, as Sumana saw the Lord Buddha he felt that the
Buddha looked particularly resplendent and worthy of faith.
The deportment of the Buddha seemed so perfect in every
respect that he felt that it was only fitting to bow down before
Him. Sumana's next thought was that all he had was eight
measures of flowers. If he used them to honour the king, all
the king could give him was income, food and clothing to see
him through the present lifetime. Ilowever, that day he was
going to pay respect to the Lord Buddha to create for himself
the positive karma that would bring him benefits not just in
this lifetime but in many lifetimes to come. Even if the king
were to execute him, it wouldn't affect the good results of
these deeds.
Sumana raised the flowers to his forehead and when he
had made his resolution, sprinkled the jasmine flowers on
the path ahead of the Lord Buddha with the intention that
the Buddha would walk upon his fragrant offering.
The Lord Buddha saw the strength of Sumana's faith — to
the degree that he was prepared to lay down his life in
order to make this offering. Thus the Lord Buddha created
a miracle in order to bring Sumana real joy, to allow him
to gain the full merit of his generous deed and lead him to
attain enlightenment in the future.
Thus as soon as the flowers were released from Sumana's
hand, the flowers floated up as a net of flowers above
where the Lord Buddha stood and this net would follow
the Lord Buddha wherever He went. At both sides of the
path all of the householders came out of their houses to
see the miraculous sight and were inspired by the sight of
the flowers which seemed to have a life of their own in
honour of the Lord Buddha.
Through Sumana's faith together with the power of the
perfections of the Lord Buddha, the jasmine flowers
sent their scent throughout the whole of the city. The
scent followed the Lord Buddha wherever he went and
this attracted everyone out of their houses to see the
sight of the Lord Buddha.
EFTA00286535
Many of the householders had seen the Lord Buddha before,
but they had never been inspired by Flint. But that day the
sight of the Lord Buddha was so impressive that many of the
householders were inspired to faith. Those who were only
slightly faithful put their hands together in a gesture of prayer.
Those who were more inspired raised their hands in a gesture
of prayer and offered words in praise of the Lord Buddha.
Those whose faith was even greater prepared food to offer
into the Buddha's bowl and followed him around to see what
would happen to the flowers.
The Buddha's almsround took him all over the city and
eventually brought Him to the front of the palace. The
king heard the news and came to give alms himself. Then
the king invited the Buddha to take his breakfast in the
palace.
As the Buddha was taking his meal, the ceiling of
flowers remained above Him — while the Buddha gave
His blessing and until he returned to Jetavana Temple.
As He entered the temple the flowers fell down in a pile
at the temple gate. This only added to the faith of the
followers and even Sumana thought,"If the king is to
execute me for failing in my duty, it has certainly been
worth it!"
By contrast, Sumana's wife thought the opposite. Shc
wondered how her husband could have been so
incredibly stupid. If he had given the flowers to the
king at least he would have got money in return. By
giving the flowers to the Buddha, he got no money in
return. All he got was faith and how was that going to
feed his hungry children? And if the king were
disatisfied about not getting his flowers and decides to
execute Sumana and decide to execute his wife and
children too, they'd all suffer because of his stupidity.
And if the king seized Sumana's belongings, he would
just take Sumana's possessions — he would take the
possessions of everybody in the household. She didn't
want that to happen. The wife went straight to the king
and disowned all responsibility for her husband's ac-
tions. She demanded divorce from her husband there
and then, and swore before the king that if her husband
was to suffer for his actions let him suffer alone. The
king asked her if she was sure of
what she was doing. The wife asserted that she was
quite sure of her actions.
Instead of being angry with Sumana, the king felt
intrigued and inspired by the flower-man's example and
decided to give Sumana a prize for his virtues. In the end
Sumana received the prize alone because his former wife
had already disowned him.
When the story reached the ears of the Lord Buddha, the
Venerable Atanda asked the Lord Buddha about the fruits of
Sumana's faith on that occasion. The Lord Buddha taught that
with a strength of faith that someone is prepared to lay down
his life, such as that of Sumana, faith is very deeply rooted in
someone's mind, making the mind of Sumana very radiant
and that for at least a hundred-thousand aeons [kappa].
However many rebirths Sumana took, he would be born in
only the human and the heaven realms. Ile would never be
born in the neither realms of hell, animals, hungry-ghosts or
asEras. After the appropriate length of time, Sumana would
become enlightened as a paccekabuddha.
Thus from the power of faith in the Buddha,the
resulting brightness and clarity of mind will stay with
one throughout the course of many lifetimes. One's
discretion will be impeccable and because one's
judgement is sound, one will be a wise one in every
lifetime. This is the fruit of paying respect to those
worthy of respect — radiance of mind, which
ultimately will lead to Right View in every lifetime.
DhA.ii.40ff.
F.3 a
SudhApiAlaya helps build pagoda
Another illustratory tale is that of Ven. SudApiAliya
Thera. When he became enlightened as an arahant he
recollected his previous lives to see how he had come
to attain arahantship and meditating to recollect his
previous lives he discovered that he had made an
offering of only a handful of lime.
SudApiAliya Thera was born in the era of one of the
previous Buddhas, at the time when that Buddha had
already entered Parinirvana. The people of the country
were building a cellya in which to inter the relics of that
Buddha. SudApiAliya Thera was a man of faith despite
his poverty, he thought,
EFTA00286536
"I have relied on the Teachings and virtue of the Lord
Buddha all along. Now that the people are all building a
cetiya as a memorial to the generations of the future to
take the same opportunity as the Lord Buddha to do
good deeds all their life. It is only fitting that I should
make some contribution to the building of the cetiya on
this occasion."
With this thought in mind, SudApiAtiyaThera felt strong
faith in the Buddha and wanted to take a part in paying
homage to the Lord Buddha along with the other people.
As a pauper, he had no possessions to give as an offering.
He went and bought a handful of lime and took this lime
as his contribution to the building of the cetiya. But on this
occasion, although the contribution was small, but his faith
profound.
The fruit of SudApiAliya Thera's faith made his mind so
radiant that from that lifetime onwards to his final rebirth,
he was born only in the human and the heaven realms. He
never descended into hell throughout 94 aeons and
attained arahantship in his final lifetime.
In the opposite respect if we cultivate anger or
vengefulness for 94 aeons this will lead us to do no end of
hateful acts and the resulting extra interest of bad karma
will ensure that you never get born in the human realm
again.
Ap.i.133
F.4 Ex. KosAtakE pays homage at pagoda
Another example is that of KosAtakE. Her name means
`loofah'. There are many species of loofah. Some can
be eaten. Some are inedible and have to be thrown
away. At the time when the Lord Buddha had already
passed away and his disciples were organizing a grand
cremation, King AjAtasattu enshrined the relics of the
Lord Buddha in a cetiya and when the ceremony was
over, there was a festival. At that time there was a
woman who was pitifully poor who had had faith in the
Lord Buddha since the time when he was alive. When
the people of the country were holding their festival to
celebrate the completion of the new cetiya, this woman
wanted to join in the celebration by honouring the
cetiya with flowers.The woman wasn't discerning
enough to buy beautiful flowers like the rest of the
people. She went and collected four loofahs from the
edge of the forest — golden yellow in colour. These
loofahs were priceless — because no•one would pay
good money for something inedible. She took the four
such fruits and set off in the direction of the cetiya with
the full intention to offer them in homage to the Lord
Buddha.
She was in such a rush that she didn't look where she was
going, so fixed was her mind on making her offering at the
ceajn. In her path were a cow and calf. The cow saw the
determination of the woman and misunderstood that she
wanted to harm her calf and responded by goring the woman
to death, before she could reach the ceajn. Even so, even
though the woman never reached the cetiya, her mind had
such a determination to accomplish her good deed that with
the collated potential of a mind with shame and fear of evil,
virtue and the wisdom to appreciate the good deeds of the
Lord Buddha, meant that as she was gored to death she was
reborn immediately as an angel — her clothes became
immediately refined as angelic raiment of the same golden
colour as the loofah and the angelic mansion that arose as the
result of her merit was also the colour of the loofah.
Indra, the king of heaven saw the new arrival in heaven and
asked what merit she had performed to cause the arising of a
golden coloured mansion. The angel smiled shyly and replied
that she had done only something very insignificant — just
taking four loofahs to pay respect to the cetiya containing the
relics of the Lord Buddha but she had been gored to death by
a cow on the way and regretted not having reached her goal or
else the golden col-our of her raiment and the mansion would
surely have been even more striking than this!
On hearing this, Indra exclaimed,"Paying respect to the
Lord Buddha with a mind of faith, even though He has
already entered parinibbAna in no way lessens the fruits
of good karma. Whether the Lord Buddha is alive or
passed away gives fruits of merits equally."
For this reason, even though we have been born in a
time after the Lord Buddha has already passed
EFTA00286537
away, it should in no way lessen our diligence in
paying respect to the Lord Buddha.
PEtavimAnavatthu, Vv.iv.9, VvA.200ff.
F.5 Er. PalicapApA pays homage with resentment
There is one more illustratory example — that of
PaficapApA. This name means `five types of evil' and
is the name give to this particular woman by her father.
The reason for such an inauspicious name was that the
child was born defective with knarled hands, lame feet,
a squint mouth, squint eyes and a crooked nose. None
of her bodily organs were in symettry. Her hands went
one way and her feet went another. Although the child
was repulsively ugly, she had one attractive point —
her skin was soft like that of an angel. Because of her
one good point, PaficapApA was to become the queen
of the country late life. When she was in the royal
palace as one of the royal consorts, her skin was so soft
that the king forgot all the other women the palace. The
other consorts were so jealous that they framed her so
that the king had to float her away on a raft
downstream. But as soon as she reached the next
kingdom, all it took was one touch for the king there to
take her as his queen. Everybody was so astonished that
a woman so physically deformed could come to be the
queen of two kingdoms that someone asked the Lord
Buddha how this could come to be.
The Lord Buddha looked back at her previous life
times and discovered that the woman had made an
offering to a paccekahuddha but the offering was made
out of anger. On that day, the woman was shoring up the
wall of her house with mud. A paccekabuddha also
needed mud to build his kuti and seeing that the woman
had more than enough mud came bowl in hand to ask
for some of the mud. The woman was reluctant to give
away any of her mud, but gave the paccekabuddha some
anyway. Out of anger, she threw a clod of mud into the
paccekabuddha's bowl. At the time she was scowling,
with her eyebrows knitted together, her feet stamping
the ground and shaking a fist at the paccekahuddha. The
result of her reluctant gooddeed in future rebirths was
that her stamping feet were lame, the hand which threw
the mud was knarled and her scowling face was
deformed beyond recognition. The good part of her
deed, the generosity, still gave its fruit — because the
mud which built the kuti which helped shelter the
paccekabuddha from the rain gave her angelic
complexion. But this could not diminish the bad part of
the deed that was not being polite to those worthy of
respect.
J.v.440ff., KuAala lAtaka (3.536)
Thus in conclusion, not paying respect to those worthy
of respect, or not having faith in those who ought to
inspire faith clouds the mind and the extension of this
ultimately to become a fool.
EFTA00286538
The Second
Group of Blessings
"Turning towards wholesomeness"
It is rare to find a system of spiritual wisdom that has environmen-
tal considerations built into its metaphysics. The possible
exception is the Chinese Feng Shut" system which probably has its
roots in Buddhism anyway. In science by contrast, them is always a
great debate in developmental biology about the relative influence
of the genetic component and the formative experience — the so-
called 'nature v. nurture' debate. For science, of course it is mostly
considerations of the development of physical features like a col-
our, or a size which might have an influence in the 'survival of the
fittest', but for spiritual wisdom, we are more interested in the de-
velopment of spiritual maturity. However, no less than with sci-
ence the Blessings of Life recognize that there is influence both by
our internal dispositions (nature) and our environmental influences
(nurture). The fourth blessing on "amenable location" is the first
blessing of the second grouping of blessings which deals with "turn-
ing towards wholesome discretion". If we have practised the first
three blessings successfully, we will already have" turned our back
on negative discretion". In this set of three blessings, the first (Bless-
ing Four) deals with "nurture" influences of the environment on
the development of our discretion. The second (Blessing Five) deals
with the "nature" influences on the development of our discretion
and the sixth deals with having a clear aim or purpose in one's life.
All three together are necessary if we want to set ourselves on the
path of development of spiritual maturity. Thus, in Buddhism, it is
acknowledged that the environment must be good if people are to
become good. If the environment lacks virtue, it will hinder peo-
ples' spiritual growth.
1
EFTA00286539
TABLE 4.1 AMENABLE LOCATION ON DIFFERENT LEVELS OF DESCRIPTION
AMENABLE
LOCATION
National Level
Local Level
Neighbourhood
Level
Household Level
Amenable
Location
Unextreme Cli-
mate, not too rug-
ged, accessible
from other coun-
tries
Ease of earning an
honest living, good
social infrastruc-
Lure, no infectious
diseases.
Good water &
electricity supplies,
good roads, no
traffic jams, good
communications,
no natural disasters
Well planned house.
sufficient spaces,
good ventilation,
trees for shade, parks
nearby, no distur-
bane from noise
k m ena hie tood
Self-sufficient in
food
Supply of good all
year round
Proximity of mar-
ket
A cottage garden, a
good cook in the
house
Amenable
Neighbours
Righteous mon-
arch or govern-
ment, population
honest, no terror-
ists or anarchists
who threaten soli-
darity
Lack of criminals,
outlaws and mafia
Access to doctors,
patrons/benefac-
tors, wise men, no
dens of vice nearby
Heads of the house-
hold must be virtu-
ous and not engage
in roads to ruin
Amenable
Dhamma Teach-
ings
Just law and cus-
toms
Good educational
system in worldly
and spiritual mat-
ters
Monks pass on
almsround, temples
and schools in area
Atmosphere of
learning and teaching
Dhamma in the
home, having at least
one communal meal
daily
EFTA00286540
Blessing Four: Living in an
Amenable Location
A. INTRODUCTION
A.1 Amenability of Location in general
Generally speaking, an appropriate or amenable
location is one which facilitates success in what we set
out to do. If we are a fisherman then it might be a place
on the coast closest to the fish breeding grounds. If we
are in business then it might be a place with all the
hustle and bustle of the crowds where our business will
prosper. And what if we are monks? Monks need a
place with special characteristics — a place that is both
peaceful and quiet but not too far from the homesteads
of the village. For soldiers, an amenable location is a
strategic one. In conclusion, each and every profession
and activity has its own appropriate location for
facilitating success. The word `location' can equally
well be applied to the microcosm the setting of a par-
ticular activity as it can to the macrocosm. Even if you
are sitting at a dining table, sitting at one side of the
table might be more or less amenable than sitting at the
other. The location that most concerns a person or his
activities
is
his
immediate
environment
or
neighbourhood- but the more distant environments of
his locality or country also have a part to play.
A.1 Amenability in Dhamma practice
The sort of location to be examined in this Blessing is
the location amenable to refining the mind or put
another way, the location that facilitates the depth
by which we can understand the Teachings of the Lord
Buddha. In such an amenable location, even though a
person may initially lack wisdom, he can make a
success of his life. On the contrary, in an unamenable
location, even though he may have a high IQ and be
capable, given no support, them is no way for him to
achieve his full potential. Even though someone might
get a PhD., if he is marooned on a desert island, all his
knowledge goes to waste. You might be the world's
greatest tactician, but if you are forced to live in the
forest with primitive tribal people, all you knowledge
will go to waste.
The factors that mark an amenable location also apply
to appropriate areas to live. The Lord Buddha
highlighted four factors which make a location
amenable — these are:
I. Amenable location
2. Amenable food
3. Amenable neighbours
4. Amenable Dhamma teachings
A.3 Amenable is not the same as materially
prosperous
In many materially prosperous countries, life can be
physically convenient. Often the infrastructure is well
developed. Employment is easy to find and it is easy
for residents to save up their wealth. On the surface,
such a country might look attractive to live in, but one
is wont to forget that although ma-
EFTA00286541
terial poverty might be hard to find, spiritual poverty
might be rife (see 5.8.4 below). In such a country, the
opportunity and the means to develop spiritual maturity
might be very hard to find. The chance to accrue merit
might be almost nonexistant. Residents in such
countries think only of work from the time they get up
in the morning to the time they go to sleep at night.
Thoughts of generosity, self-discipline or meditation
might be the last thing on their minds. Even for those
who have some spiritual calling, often they can find
no-one to give them useful advice. To live in such a
country might be life wasted from the point of view of
spiritual development. It would be better to make some
sacrifices of material convenience in choosing the place
you want to live, in order to live in an environment of
spiritual richness — which is truly an amenable
environment for one's spiritual progress.
B. Components
The components of amenable location cannot be
defined globally because they mean different things at
different levels of explanation (see diagram p.66):
B.I Amenable Location
B. L I National Level
At the geographical level, it may mean an amenable
climate that is not too hot and not too cold. It might
mean that the landscape is not too rugged or liable to
flooding — but at the same time with convenient
communications towards the rest of the world.
B.L2 Local Level
At a more local level, an amenable climate means ease
for the populace in earning a decent living, good
communications, proper social infrastructure and a
plentiful supply of clean drinking water.
B.1.3 Neighbourhood Level
On the level of the neighbourhood, the things that make
the environment amenable are a proper water and
electricity supply, a good road system to avoid traffic
jams, good communications and no flooding in the wet
season.
B. L4 Household Level
On the level of the household, the things that count for
making the environment amenable are a properly
planned house with sufficient space, good ventilation,
enough trees round and about to give shade, nearby
open areas or parks and no disturbance from noise.
Applying the same principles to a temple, amenable
temple grounds is sufficiently spacious for the number
of templegoers, with enough shade to allow the
congregation to meditate in comfort and without
disturbance from the hustle and bustle of urban life.
B.2 Amenable Food
B.2.1 National Level
On a national level, amenable food means being
self-sufficient in one's food supply, not having to rely
on neighbouring countries for one's food supply, or
drinking water.
B.2.2 Local Level
On local level, amenable food might mean the prox-
imity of a market for foodstuffs. It might also mean
being able to grow home-produce. In any case, anyone
who lives in an area liable to flooding should try to be
self sufficient with their own cottage garden. It doesn't
matter how you go about growing the vegetables. For
some villages, when the floods come, if the government
doesn't send in supplies by helicopter for two or three
days, the whole village will starve. These are always
the villages which are too lazy to grow their own
vegetables. If they had grown their own vegetables,
even though the floods come, it doesn't particularly
bother them. By contrast, those places that plant only
cash crops like maize, lose everything they have as
soon as the floods arrive. Just having a few vegetables
like onions in the garden allows one to survive for over
a month even when the floods come.
B.2.3 Neighbourhood Level
Amenability of food at the neighbourhood level might
mean the proximity of the market.
8.1.4 Household Level
An amenable food supply at the household level
EFTA00286542
can be summarized with just a few brief hints:
I. You should have a supply of vegetables used around
the kitchen in reserve in your cottage garden in case of
times of need.
2. Your house should be located close to the market. If
it is too far from the market, this will become an
obstacle to obtaining food.
3. Your house ought to have a good cook. A good cook
is the heart of a successful kitchen. There was once an
army general who commented in front of his wife
(whether he meant to praise her or criticize her is
uncertain) saying, "the only reason that I've been able
to put up with her all these years, is her only single
good point
— apart from this point there is nothing good about
her.
She neglects the children. She is useless at
receiving guests. She takes little care of the
household finances — I have to do the accounts
myself. The only reason that I've been able to put up
with her all these years, is that she makes a tasty
meal. If it wasn't for her being a good cook, we
would have gone our separate ways years ago."
Anybody who thinks they can rely on instant foods,
convenience foods and take-aways should think
again. Everybody should attempt to learn how to
cook. If ever you have to take care of someone who
is ill or lonely or anxious, who have lost their
appetite, and you can't get out to the market — that
will be the time when your ability to make a proper
meal will really make a difference.
For as long as we still have defilements in the mind, we
still have an appetite and we still have our favourite
foods. Were not all like crocodiles which can survive
on gravel. For as long as we're still human, we are still
choosy about the food we eat. Too sweet or sour, salty
or oily and the food loses its attraction. Thus if the food
we eat is to be amenable there is no harm in food being
tasty.
B.3 Amenable Neighbours
B.3.1 Definitions
The various characteristics of a location or a neigh-
bourhood, whether good or bad, are only general
characteristics. Even if the general characteristics
of a location are abysmal, but the place is inhabited by
virtuous people, then the drawbacks of the location can
be overcome. On the other hand, in a good location
with good housing and employment prospects, if the
inhabitants are dishonest, however beautiful the
buildings, it can be no better than a den of thieves. If
the inhabitants are peaceful and well mannered, like
monks, then the buildings are a refuge as good as a
temple.
B.3.2 National Level
At the national level, amenable personnel means a
population who eke out their existence by honest
means. It means a population that lacks criminals,
terrorists or anarchists who threaten the solidarity of the
country.
B.3.3 Local Level
At the local level, if the populace are interested in
nothing more than earning their living, society will not
be a happy one.
B.3.4 Neighbourhood Level
At the neighbourhood level, in addition to a
hardworking populace there must be those who make a
direct contribution to the well-being of the society.
I. Doctors are necessary in any society. Without them,
every illness will entail death. Even if a location is the
most profitable of marketplaces, without doctors in the
background, it can never become an amenable society.
Z Patrons and benefactors. Patrons and benefactors
arise in a society where there is trading. Those who live
in a mercantile society reap the benefits of having
capital and such a society breeds rich benefactors and
millionaires. Compare a society of people where there
are only paupers and beggars and you will see how hard
it is for such a society to become amenable to the study
of Dhamma. In the time of the Lord Buddha, if a king
decided to establish a new city, even if he had sufficient
labour, craftsmen, without being granted a benefactor
or patron from a neighbouring city, to be the patron of
the new city, the king wouldn't dare to build a new
town.
EFTA00286543
(see 5.D.2 below) The reason that having a patron
was so important, apart from being a capitalist who
would stimulate trade and growth, he would act as
the economist who would help the king with his
financial policy-making so that the new city would
be able to keep its financial head above water.
3. Wise men. Many of the reasons for the importance of
the wise have already been covered in Blessing Two.
In brief, the wise have a special discretion which allows
them to distinguish between what is right and what is
wrong, what's appropriate and what's inappropriate,
what is meritorious and what is downright evil. Even if
you're illiterate, but you can tell the difference between
right and wrong, you can still be considered a wise one.
Thus if you are choosing a place to live, avoid choosing
a place where no wise ones live, because in such a
place society is not amenable to the study of Dhamma.
4. Righteous Monarch who is established in the Ten
Virtues of a Monarch. Without going into detail, it can
be said that a qualifying monarch must be just and
moral. Of course the country's leader doesn't have to
be a king to make it an amenable place to live. The
same virtues in a president will make his country as
amenable as a country governed by a virtuous king.
8.3.5 Household Level
Amenable personnel at the level of the household
means the leader of the household must be virtuous.
The husband should abstain from drinking alcohol, the
wife from gambling. Both should be earnest in earning
an honest living. Their children should be earnest in
their studies and should be obedient to their parents'
command. In this way the household will be united as
the smallest unit of an amenable society.
8.4 Amenable Dhamma
B.4.1 Definitions
Dhamma is the culture or principles which governs the
lifestyle of a society that lives in an amenable location.
At the most basic level amenable Dhamma
in a society means the governing principles of law and
order that the society abides by. Amenable Dhamma is
lacking from countries where outlaws run amok. At a
deeper level, amenable Dhamma equates with culture
and tradition that is one of virtue. The law protects
society only from acts of violation through the channels
of body and speech, but has no effect on the quality of
peoples' minds.The minds of a nation can be shaped for
the better only by culture or traditions that raise the
quality of mind. Examples of this might be the attitude
of respect that a child should have towards his parents
or a student towards his master. For as long as such
traditions are still perpetuated and passed down from
one generation to the next in a particular society, that
society is still an amenable place to live.
By contrast, you should avoid going to live in a barbaric
society where man has no respect for his fellow man. An
example of this would be the primitive society which
idolize the man who is able to kill his own father — seeing
him as the epitomy of hard-heartedness and fit to be the
leader of the tribe.
At a yet deeper level, amenable Dhamma in a society
means a good educational system which allows the
citizens to make a thorough study of both worldly and
spiritual matters — where both schools and temples form
the educational infrastructure of society — and all citizens
are equipped with sufficient rationale not to be credulous.
Deeper still, Buddhism should be well rooted in that
country. The Lord Buddha taught that some people are
born empty-handed and die empty handed — because
they cannot distinguish between good and bad deeds.
They just do whatever they feel like doing. When they
are young, their parents bring them up. When they are
full-grown, they get married and have a family — and
their children get married and have their own children
and the family name is perpetuated for another
generation. In the end they pass away and they have no
merit or demerit to take with them when they go. It is
this sort of person that Buddhism recognizes as being
born empty-handed and dying empty-handed. Put
another way, life has been fruitless for them.
EFTA00286544
Even though some people are born on the doorstep of
Buddhism, they still leave the world empty-handed — so
what chance do people who have never even come across
Buddhism stand? The Lord Buddha thus laid down guidelines
for life, teaching that having taken human birth, you must
seek benefit both for this lifetime and the next. Benefit can
only accrue if you use your body and mind for positive good
deeds that will give worthwhile returns on our having been
born human. The Lord Buddha taught that at the very least,
you ought to be able to set yourself up in life. If you are in
debt or still have to rely on others for the roof over your head,
you have not yet suceeded in even the most rudimentary of
human duties. If you are a man (and not a mouse) you must
be able to stand on your own two feet. This is what we call
benefit for the present lifetime.
From our description so far of the features of an
amenable location, whether the inhabitants know
Buddhism or not, they will manage to succeed in
fulfilling benefit for the present lifetime. Where those
who don't know Buddhism miss out, is through not
knowing how to fulfil benefits for the next lifetime.
Without a knowledge of Buddhism, you can do no
better than use up the merits accrued from previous
lifetimes. No additional merits are accrued this lifetime
and at the end of this life, your after-life destination will
be one of suffering. Those who accrue benefit for future
lifetimes, when they die will not go to hell or be born as
animals. Whatever the proportion of good and bad
deeds they may have done, at the very least they will
take human birth again — even though they may be
handicapped in one way or another.
84.2 National Level
Amenable Dhamma Teachings at National Level means
having just laws and customs as the national identity.
R43 Local Level
Dhamma for the children means having a good school.
If our children have the chance to study at a decent
school, it will give them a head start in life
because there is such a great variety of quality in the
teaching given at different schools. Dhamma for the
adults means having a good temple near at hand. At the
very least, if there is a temple near to our house there
will be monks who pass near to our house on their
almsround and we will have the opportunity to make
merit every morning. If we want to listen to a sermon,
we won't have to go far. If a site is close to both the
school and the temple it will earn plenty of points for
amenable Dhamma.
B.4.4 Neighbourhood Level
Amenable Dhamma Teachings at the Neighbourhood
Level means that monks pass on almsround and having
temples and schools in the vicinity.
B.4.5 Household Level
This means an atmosphere of enthusiasm for Dhamma
learning and teaching in the home.
B.4.6 Profit in for next life (A.iv.284)
The special characteristic of Dhamma teaching that
prevents a
person
from
"leaving
the
world
empty-handed" are the sort of teachings that lead to
"profit in the hereafter". The Lord Buddha taught that
the minimum of virtue required is the four virtues for
benefit in the hereafter as follows [sampAyikattha-
payojana] (see detail from B1.2 §C4.2).
I. Faith [saddha]: means confidence in things you
ought to have faith in — being a person of discretion
especially in the operation of the laws of karma — that
doing good deeds will lead to good outcomes and that
doing evil will lead to bad retribution. Without such
well-founded faith you have little chance of well-being
kiniSts
[sEla]: You must keep the minimum of
Five Precepts as the baseline of one's virtue because the
Precepts measure the degree to which you are a person
as opposed to being a savage.
3. Self-sacrifice [cAga]: Self-sacrifice has many levels
of meaning from the superficial to the deep. At its
simplest, it means avoiding being so stingy that you
cannot bear to see anyone else sharing your possessions
or getting any benefit from them. It means the habit of
liking to sham with
EFTA00286545
others. At its deepest level it means giving up even
the destructive feelings we might feel towards other
people or more generally, letting go of anything that
encroaches on our quality of mind — i.e. all
thoughts of evil and unseemly habits until none
remain.
4. Wisdom [pafulA]. To be specific, diligence in
studying both worldly and spiritual knowledge
— so that we can earn a decent living efficiently and
at the same time know the difference between good
and evil — in order to win the path to heaven. Once
people are able to identify what is merit and what is
demerit, they will gain the inspiration to do only
good deeds. Thus knowledge paves the pathway to
heaven.
Cl Choosing the location of a new home
Having studied the four main principles of a location
which is amenable to the spreading of the Dhamma, we
have at the same time discovered a recipe for success in
choosing the location of a new house. In the olden days,
no-one would dare to build a new house without first
seeking the advice of a teaching monk or at the very
least of a fortune teller. They would always advise the
oracle in question to look at the lie of the land. In fact,
the most successful oracles were not interested in the lie
of the land at all, but were interested in how many of
the four principles of amenable location were present at
the proposed site of the new house. If you want to tell
as much about the potential site of a new house as the
oracles of old did, start by drawing up a grid with five
rows as follows:
Site 1
Site
2
Site
3
Site
4
1. Location
2. Food
3. Neighbours
4.Dhamma
Once you have drag n up the grid, supposing you
wanted to build a house and you have a choice of four
or five locations, but cannot decide which to
choose, then award points to each of the different
locations according to the four principles of an
amenable location: location, food, neigbours and
Dhamma. Give each principle points out of twenty-five.
When we add up the total points for each different
location, we will be able to choose the most amenable
location by choosing the site with the highest point
rating. Use the following guidelines for giving points:
I. Amenable location: We should look at the neigh-
bourhood and give points if the place has good facilities
including access, running water, electricity and a
telephone line. If there is already a house on the site,
the more spacious the better. The quality of the
construction work will also guide you as to your
awarding of points. Look at the subdivision of rooms to
see whether it is habitable or not. Give the location
points accordingly.
2. Amenable food supply: Consider that if you should
choose a particular site for your home, you will be
living there for a long time and therefore should give
adequate thought to the availability of food. Make sure
that the location isn't too far from the market or from a
shop selling food and various other 'perishables'. If any
of these sources of food are close at hand, you can
award that site plenty of points for the food supply.
3. Amenable neighbours: Inspect the location to see
whether it is near to or part of a slum. Do people
gamble there or nearby? Is it close to a liquor factory?
Is it a den of thieves? If it is any of these things, then
keep your distance. Choose somewhere else. If on the
contrary, all the neighbours are respectable, socially
distinguished and of Right View (such as doctors or
teachers) of good social standing and of good conduct,
then this should attract us to live nearby. At the very
least, those good neighbours will give us peaceful sur-
roundings and in times of need they will be able to help
us. Give the neighbours the appropriate point rating.
4. Amenable Dhamma: In order to give points for this
particular factor, it is necessary to divide the
EFTA00286546
factor into two contributing parts: Dhamma for the
children and Dhamma for the adults.
When you add up the total points for each site, you
should choose the location with the maximum points as
the site for your new house. Next time you move house
there is no need to call in the fortune teller — or a monk
either, because armed with an understanding of the
factors that make a site amenable for habitation, you
can choose the site for new house without anyone else's
help. This is certainly a good example of Dhamma that
is immediately applicable to everyday life.
C2 Making your present home amenable
For those who do not ordain and leave the home life,
usually, the home and family form the hub of life. In this
connection, what should be done to the home to make it
amenable to the prospering of the Dhamma? According to
Thai tradition, even though we might have three meals a
day, there should be at least one of those meals when the
whole of the family is together (See Blessing 12, ,§B.3.1
heading 3.2).
Some people claim that they are overburdened with work.
However if you consider that the only reason that you spend
so much time at work is to be a breadwinner for your family
to send your child to a private school — then think again. If
you are left with no time to bring up your children properly
and your child gets addicted to heroin because of your
negligence, a million dollars would be insufficient to rectify
the problem. If on the contrary, you can get by while still
finding sufficient time to give run attention to your child's
upbringing, then you will be rewarded when your child grows
up into a virtuous example of a human being.
Many parents have been reduced to tears by dis-
appointment. They're upset that their child cannot go to
university because of becoming a junkie. They cry
about their awful child — but it would be more fitting
to cry about having been such an awful parent who
didn't take the trouble to bring up their own child
properly!
Therefore, remember that bringing up a child means
more than just seeing that there is food on their plate.
You need to instil your child with vir
tue and to this end, both children and parents should see
each others' faces across the dining table at least once a
day, and discuss Dhamma, instruct one another and
comment on the habits which each should be improving
upon. If you can't manage to meet at mealtimes, you
should make sure that the family come together before
bedtime, perhaps for Evening Chanting — but even
bedtime cannot beat mealtimes. A child will never miss
a meal, and a good telling off before dinner will stay in
his mind for a long time.
Thus if you are to give a good example of Dhamma
which is amenable to the household, then a family being
together at mealtimes will certainly fit the bill.
C.3 Relative importance of the Four Amenable
Location Factors
In conclusion, an amenable location has four char-
acteristics: an amenable location, amenable food supply,
amenable personnel and amenable Dhamma. If you put
these four characteristics in order of importance, you will
find the following: Amenable Dhamma is the most
important, followed by amenable personnel, followed by
amenable food supply and an amenable location is the least
important of the four.
Even though the location may not be ideal, but the food
is plentiful or neither the location or the food supply are
ideal, but the inhabitants are amenable, they can soon
improve the quality of the location and the food.
However, the thing that makes the inhabitants amenable
is having Amenable Dhamma it that location. This is
the reason why Amenable Dhamma is the most
important attribute of the four.
C.4 Amenable Location outside, Amenable Location inside
There are two different types of amenable location:
I. Amenable Surroundings: the quality of location
which is determined by the four factors already
discussed.
Z Amenable Location within: This is the most im-
portant influence on the quality of our well being — i.e.
a healthy body and mind — a body
EFTA00286547
and mind that are in no way disabled or infected
by disease. Some people are born with a silver spoon in their
mouths. They are brought up properly by their parents, but
when they grow up, instead of feeling grateful for all the
efforts made by their parents, they inflict illness upon
themselves by turning alcaholic. There are a myriad diseases
that come as a result of drinking alcohol. Even lying can be
the source of disease (see Blessing Nine, $C.I.4)causing your
memory to become blurred and eventually leading to senile
dementure as the result of the bad karma you have
accumulated throughout the course of your life.
Thus as we have seen from the examples of breaking the
Precepts of lying or drinking alcahol, all of the Precepts, if
broken, will be the source of illness. Thus you need to
protect your internal environment. If you pollute the
quality of your internal environment, success will elude
you for the rest of your life and your future lifetimes will
be even worse. Take care of your Precepts and they will
take care of you.
Now that you know the four factors of an amenable
location if you are still a child you should look for a
location that is going to be amenable to your own
education. If you are an adult then you should try to make
your location into an amenable location, wherever you go.
As an adult, it isn't good enough simply to go looking for
amenable locations, you should be working actively to
improve the quality of the environment.
D.1 Metaphor: Bonsai Bodhi Tree
It is said that if you plant a tree in fertile soil, it will
grow until it is many metres in diameter. If you take the
same tree and plant it in a flower pot or a barrel, it will
end up as a root-bound bonsai tree instead. Even if it is
watered and carefully tended for several generations it
will never grow higher than a few inches. Asked why a
thousand-year old tree reaches only a few inches in
height, we come back to the conclusion that it has been
planted in an unamenable location. Even though it
doesn't grow tall, it doesn't die.
D.2 EL Establishing Saketu (DhA.L386)
When King Pasenadi built the new city of Saketu in the
time of the Lord Buddha, he sent a letter to King
BimbAsara to ask for permission to move one of the
patrons from that kingdom to live in the new city. King
BimbasAra sent VisAkhA's father as patron to the new
city. Before long, the patron got all the finances of the
city properly organized and Saketu became one of the
most prosperous city-states in India at that time. This
goes to show that an amenable city doesn't just consist
of buildings but it needs the presence of amenable
neighbours such as benefactors and patrons.
D.3 EL Ariya the fisherman (DhA.iii.396ff)
Even though some people in the time of the Lord
Buddha had no worldly knowledge — they were
completely illiterate and were of the lowest trades
— but they had the good fortune to be born in an
amenable location (i.e. in the same time and place as
the Buddha) and because of this fact alone, were able to
attain enlightenment to level of a stream enterer
[sotApana].
There was a fisherman called"Ariya" (lit. "noble one")
who lived during the time of the Buddha. As a
fisherman, he caught and killed fish every day. One day
in meditation, the Buddha saw Ariya's potential to attain
the fruit of stream-entry [sotApattiphala] and went, with
a number of othcr monks to where Ariya was fishing.
Seeing the Buddha approaching, Ariya became ashamed
of his action and hid his fishing line. When the Buddha
arrived, while standing in front of the man, he asked
SAriputta his name. "SAriputta", replied SAriputta. The
Buddha then proceeded to ask the name of each of the
monks and overhearing, the man wondered whether
after asking all the monks' names, the Buddha would
ask his. The Buddha knew what he was thinking and
asked the man his name. "Ariya" replied the man. In
fact, the Buddha didn't need to be told the man's name.
The Buddha gave Ariya a teaching that anyone who still
harmed other living beings could not be called 'noble'
on account of his actions. He said that one's nobility
comes from not harming other living be
EFTA00286548
ings. Hearing the Buddha's teaching, Ariya attained
stream-entry and from that day onwards never killed a
living being again, having transcended the very
intention to kill — in spite of the fact that he was
illiterate. He lived in the depths of poverty, but he had
one auspicious advantage in his life, and that was to
live in a time and place where there was the opportunity
to come face-to-face with the Lord Buddha — and this
alone allowed him to become enlightened to the level of
a stream-enterer.
D.4 Ex. Ghosaka's lifetime as a dog (DhA.i.169,
PsA.504ff)
Another example of a similar phenomenon happened in a time
before the Lord Buddha. At that time, the only Buddhas in
existence were paccekabuddhas who although enlightened,
were unable to teach for the benefit of the manyfolk. These
paccekabuddhas came on almsround in the city. Having
collected alms, they would return to the forest to take their
meal. This would be his normal daily routine. Seeing that the
paccekabuddha had to walk such a long way each day, one of
the more faithful supporters invited the paccekabuddha to
dwell nearby his own house and would bring food for the
paccekabuddha every for every morning and midday meal.
Any day when the householder was not free to make the
offering himself, he would send his well-trained dog to
carry a tiffin set of food to offer to the paccekabuddha
at his place. As the dog grew more familiar with the
paccekabuddha it took a liking to Him because the
deportment and manner of the paccekabuddha was so
gentle. If the dog was at home and failed to mind
firewood for its master it would be beaten. However, in
the dwelling of the paccekabuddha it was a different
story. When the dog came close he could listen to the
chanting of the paccekabuddha. There was no risk of
being beaten and the paccekabuddha would even divide
part of the food to give to the dog as well. The dog
became more and more familiar with the gentle manner
of the paccekabuddha.
At the end of the rainy season, the paccekabuddha bid
the householder farewell and returned to the
forest. The paccekabuddha made his journey by floating
through the air. The dog watched the paccekabuddha go
with regret and howled as loudly as it could because
there was nothing else for it to do. It was a sad farewell
for the dog who still had the paccekabuddha on its
mind. The dog was so sad that as it came to the end of
its howling, it dropped dead. However, as the result of
the faith of this dog in the paccekabuddha and from
howling at the departure of the paccekabuddha, the dog
was reborn immediately as an angel called Ghosaka —
whose duty was to be a spokesman for the rest of the an-
gels.
In the time of the Lord Buddha, Ghosaka was reborn in
the human realm as Ghosaka the Millionnaire and was
one of the greatest patrons of Buddhism. The result of
living in an amenable location and taking the chance to
be an attendant to a paccekabuddha led him to become
an angel on dying from rebirth as a dog and from his
rebirth as an angel to be reborn as an important patron of
Buddhism.
D.5 Et Monk and Five-Hundred Bats (Vagguli
Vatthu SadS. 8Iff)
Another example comes from the time of a previous Buddha.
There was a monk who had retired to a cave in order to train
himself. The monk would rise early each moming and chant
the Abhidhamnta.The monk shared the cave with five-hun-
dred bats. During the day the bats would return to the cave but
at night they would fly outside to feed. Thus the bats would
hear the chanting of the Abhidhamma every day. Even though
the bats had no way of knowing the meaning of the chanting,
they became familiar with the sound of the monk's chanting
and became inspired with faith.
When it came to time for the bats to pass away, they
died with faith in their hearts and were all reborn as
angels. Passing away from their existence as angels,
they were reborn as men in the time of the present
Buddha. All five hundred men became ordained as
monks and hearing the chanting of the Abhidhamma
only once, unlike normal people who might remain
indifferent to the chanting, could re-
EFTA00286549
member the words of the Abhidhamma which were cried as arahants. still impressed in their minds from that
previous Thus, it is easy to see that simply living in an amelifetime, and recollecting the words of the nable
location is not just advantageous for people Abhidhamma were soon able to become enlight— even lowly
animals can experience the benefits!
EFTA00286550
Blessing Five: Having done
good deeds in one's past
A. INTRODUCTION
With Blessing Five we are still exploring the virtues which
comprise "turning towards wholesomeness" as exemplified by
the second grouping. Last blessing we have already mentioned
the "naturenurture" dichotomy of scientifically understood de-
velopment. Last blessing already covered the "nurture"aspect
of the environment — and so this Blessing we come to the
factor of "nature" — the aspects of our character and
personality which we bring with us into the world. In this
Blessing we attempt to explain the variety of material and spir-
itual success between different people in the world
— differences which are not accountable in terms of the
Blessings we have already studied up to this point. How
for example can we explain the differences in disposition
and life success of identical twins (with the same genetic
components), brought up by the same parents in the same
environment?
How about newborn children, who far from being a
clean slate have different personalities, different
potentials and different speeds of learning. Science
would attribute these things to genetic differences
behveen their grandparents. This might work out for
some things such as how people look or their physical
strength, but I think you would agree that there are
many other things that genetics cannot explain. No
scientist has ever found a gene for intelligence for
example. All that are found are the abberations that
make people handicapped — and these are in spite of
the fact that neither their parents or their grandparents
were handicapped in such away. Thus it must be
something about the child himself brings with him into
the world.
This Blessing attempts to account for the disparity in
terms of the residue of life experience picked up by
individuals in their past — particularly the positive life
experiences.
In order to understand the rather lengthy matter of
having done good deeds in one's past, it is necessary to
study the subject of merit in general and to touch also
upon the subjects of retribution and mind quality. Some
people study the Manual of Peace from Blessing One
(Not Associating with Fools) through Blessing Two
(Associating with the Wise), Blessing Three (Paying
Respect to those worthy of Respect). They are able to
accept all the reasoning of these first three Blessings,
and are able to follow them in their everyday life. They
even find that Blessing Four (Living in an Amenable
Location), makes sense in their everyday lives —
because in any case they have to choose the location for
their home and the place where they go to school, col-
lege and university. However, they may have difficulty
with the claim that the sort of deeds we have done in
the past can affect our quality of life and even the
quality of society. It is obvious that with with this
Blessing we are starting to deal with more subtle
phenomena than before.
Al. Success and Failure in Life
Success and failure might appear on many different
levels — on the level of society, the level of lifestyle,
the level of personality or the level of the mind itself —
but basically it comes down to quality of mind on four
levels
A person blessed with success on the level of the mind
will have a quality mind — that is a mind that
EFTA00286551
is stable and unwavering, hard to distract, pure and
radiant, spacious and light, adaptable to any sort of task
and implicitly happy and peaceful. Those who are less
lucky might have a mind that is dull, inert and easily
distracted.
A person blessed with success on the level of the
personality might may find that people believe every word
of what they say. Those who are less lucky might find that
even if they tell the truth solidly for a month, no-one will
believe them.
A person blessed with success on the level of the lifestyle
might seem to be born smart. Their discretion is reliable.
Those who are less lucky might have such bad judgement that
they become too afraid to make any decisions, always
hesitating or provaricating instead — and they miss life's
opportunities as a result. Even though they might do their best
at work and take painstaking care never to make any error —
they may be disliked and discriminated against by their boss.
A society blessed with success can muster all its human
and natural resources to become a world leader. Less
lucky countries, even those with educated citizens and
abundant natural resources can be reduced to deserts by
corruption and civil strife.
B. DEFINITIONS
111. "Merit": Definitions and Characteristics
This residue of positivity or strength of mind which we
have built up for ourselves in their past, is called by the
technical term, `merit'. The Pali word `putdiA' from
which we derive the word 'merit', can be translated in
different ways according to context just like the word
`well' can mean `healthy' or `properly' depending on the
context. Thus, the word `puntiAl has many meanings —
it can mean goodness, purification, cleansing, happiness
or full. This spectrum of definitions, tell us not only the
characteristics of merit, but also something of the func-
tion of merit too. The word `merit' in English fpuilliA]
can sometimes be confusing because it makes us think of
being honoured or praised or approved of by another
person. However, all that is intended in this case is that it
is `deserved'. It occurs spontaneously without needing a
third party
to award it to us. A general definition of merit is: 'the
result of doing a good deed'. It has the following
characteristics:
I. It is distilled in the mind as soon as we perform a
good deed;
2. Is the agent by which the quality of the mind is
improved;
3. It can be accumulated;
4. Merit belongs to the one who performed its origi-
nating deed;
5. As we use it, normally it will become exhausted;
6. The amount of merit depends on strength of in-
tention, amount of effort and amount of gratitude and
ingratitude of the producing action.
7. Gives effects attracting favourable circumstances at
four levels: mind, personality, lifestyle and society.
If you are an advanced meditator you can use your
meditation to see what merit is like. However, the most
that a normal meditator can see of the merit is like its
shadow. We see its effects and so deduce that it must be
present. We can compare merit to electricity (i.e.
something which we cannot see or feel because it is
nothing more than a source of power which cannot be
observed with the naked eye). Normally, we cannot see
electricity, only the effects it causes such as the heat
from an iron when electricity is connected, or the
electric shock which ensues if one grasps a live wire; it
enters a light bulb and gives us the light by which we
can read in the evening; it goes into a radiator and
brings us warmth; it enters a refrigerator and stops our
food from decaying and it enters a motor and makes it
to spin. In the same way that we can use electricity
without really ever having seen it, most of us have to be
able to content with accruing merit without seeing it for
ourselves. Merit cannot be observed with the naked eye,
nevertheless we have the feeling that when we perform
a meritorious deed, that the mind is refreshed and loses
any sense of irritation or crampedness leaving the mind
spacious, light and content. Most people in the world
have never seen the real nature of merit itself, and thus
have their doubts as to whether doing good deeds
EFTA00286552
really creates merit or not. However, those with more
experience of meditation, who have seen the real nature
of the merit for themselves, will see the merit as clearly
as others see the rain falling from the heavens.
R2 "In the past": Defined
At this point we have to examine the meaning of the
merits that we have performed in the past — and this
may apply to anything in your past whether it means
yesterday or many years ago. In fact our past can be
divided into two periods:
I. Our Recent Past: which means the time from which
we were born from our mother's womb, and opened our
eyes for the first time to look at the world right up to
yesterday.
2. Our Distant Past: which means all of our existences
and experiences up to the time when we entered the
womb in the most recent lifetime.
To describe both of these periods of our past in a simpler way
we can say that the merit in our recent past is all the good
deeds we have done this lifetime since our childhood onwards.
Examples of such good deeds might include helping our
parents wash the dishes when we were young. We might have
helped with the family business as we became older.
Eventually, when we completed our education, and got down
to a steady career, we have divided our time between earning
a living and accruing good deeds for ourselves. All these good
deeds right from the time when we were born can be referred
to as merit in our recent past.
As for the merit in our distant past, this refers to the
merits that we have accrued in ow previous lives,
whether it may be last lifetime or a hundred lifetimes
ago.
B3. Quality of Merit
Apart from categorizing merit according towhen it was
accrued merit can be categorized according to its
quality: mundane merit [lokiyaputulA] and tran-
scendental merit [IokuttaraputiiiA].
L Mundane merit is the merit that people are generally
familiar with — that is to say for people for whose mind
is not completely pure at the time they do the good deed.
Such merit can run out. When the merit is used up, it
will no longer give its benefits — just like a tank full of
petrol which has a limited range.
2. Transcendental Merit is the merit that arises in the
pure mind. Such merit is steadfast and will never
diminish or be exhausted.
Thus the purity of the mind also has an important role
to play in dictating the quality of the merit we are able
to accrue for ourselves.
Cl. Three Major ways to Accrue Merit
There are Ten Major Ways to Accrue Merit. As
mentioned in the preceding sections, merit arises as the
result of doing good deeds. Unfortunately, simply
knowing that "good" is "meritorious" doesn't explain how
to go about doing good deeds. "Goodness" or "merit" can
become meaningless and cliched if they are not defined in
the context of practice, and for this reason that Buddhism
summarizes the different ways of practice of good deeds
into a collection of ten types of practice in three categories
through which merit canbe accrued. For the benefit of
such people, the three categories of ways to accrue merit
[pulitiAkiriyavatthu] are — generosity, keeping the
precepts and meditation.
L Generosity includes merit generated through
generosity, merit generated through service, merit
generated through the transfer of merit to others and
merit generated through rejoicing in the merit of others.
2. Keeping the Precepts includes merit generated
through keeping the Precepts.
3. Meditation includes merit generated through
meditation, merit generated through humility towards
those of high virtue, merit generated through listening
to Dhamma sermons, merit generated through giving a
discourse on the Dhamma and merit generated through
correcting our assumptions about the world.
EFTA00286553
CZ Ten Major Ways to accrue merit
If you expand these three categories into their ten types
of practice we get the following:
1. Generosity: this means merit generated through
generosity [dAnamaya]. Some may wonder why merit
can be accrued as the result of giving. Merit arises in
the mind as explained above. The mind in its natural
state takes the form of a clear sphere of diamond
brightness, however, when polluted by defilements,
these reduce the sparkling mind to dullness and
weakness, lowering the potential of the mind. If a
person does something generous, giving away some
part of that wealth which is the source of their anxiety,
the mind becomes more at ease. Merit arises and this
merit lights up the mind for a while. The radiance
gradually accrues in the mind. The brightness, or the
merit accumulates in the mind as generous deeds are
performed regularly. The merit that arises from
generosity is generated by two actions of the mind:
firstly, the removal of the defilement of greed from the
mind — something which immediately upgrades the
quality of the mind and of our character too; secondly,
as a result of the benefit obtained from the gift by the
recipient — the more benefit is obtained by the
recipient, especially from a gift that is hard-wearing, the
more merit will be accrued by the giver.There are many
different forms of generosity.
1. Giving useful material objects to others,
whether it is food, clothing, shelter or medicine, will
generate merit for the giver. The most basic act of
generosity is the gift of something that is beneficial
to the recipient [vatthudAna].
2. Giving worldly knowledge [vidhayadAna] Merit
is also generated if you give the gift of knowledge
that is beneficial to the recipient. of benefit to any
recipient. Knowledge may be vocational skills —
such as how to set oneself up as a tailor.
3. Giving spiritual knowledge [dhammadAna] of
benefit to the recipient is knowledge of the Dhamma
such as the advice contained in this book.
4 Forgiving: There is also a way of giving where
you don't have to make any physical effort at all —
when you are angry with Mr. A, Mr. B and Mr. C.
All of them have at some time or other contributed
trouble to your life. Suppose that one day, you
decide to put an end to all the anger and forgive
them for all the upsets they have caused you in the
past — and start afresh. In such a case, as soon as
the thought crosses you mind to forgive them, merit
will arise in your mind. Even though you haven't
expended even the slightest physical effort, you have
managed to earn yourself merit though giving
'forgiveness' [abhAyadAna]. Even giving others a
smile instead of a scowl will bring you merit
according to the same principle of forgiveness!
2. Humility: This means merit generated through
Humility towards those of High Virtue
[apacAyanamaya]. You may be surprised that even
without expending any physical effort, simply
possessing the attitude of humility can cause one to
accrue merit. The person who, instead of finding fault
with others is both humble and respectful, has a virtue
that will allow him to find the good in each and every
person he meets. He will put others' faults to one side.
Such humility will lead the owner to accrue merit,
because at the very least, they will always see the world
in a positive light, allowing them to remain in a pleasant
mood the whole day long. If they are perceptive they
will have the wisdom to see the virtues in the hearts of
others and instil themselves with those virtues which
they see in others — accruing even greater merit for
themselves.
3. Service: This means merit generated through Service
[veyyAvaccamaya]. This is the domain of those who
immediately rush to assist others who they see doing
good deeds. For example, if they find out that their
neighbour is preparing a meal to offer the monks, they
will prepare all the seasoning needed for the meal and
and give that to the neighbour making the meal.
4. Transfer of Merit: Merit generated through the
transfer of merit to others [pattidAnamaya].
EFTA00286554
Whenever someone does a good deed and his mind
is full of merit as the result of his goodness, and he
transfers some part of his merit to another person, or
to his deceased relatives, these are all counted as
ways of generating merit through the transfer of
merit.
5. Rejoicing in the Merit of others: Merit generated
through rejoicing in the merit of others
[pattAnumodanAmaya]. This sort of merit is accrued by
those who, whenever they see that someone else has
done a good deed, is pleased for them and rejoices with
them in the merit that they have made. Even if they are
unable to contribute anything more to that person's
merit making, by rejoicing with them or congratulating
them on doing their good deed, they will earn a part of
the merit for themselves too. It is in this connection that
you often hear the word `Sadhu!' in Buddhist circles.
6. Keeping the Precepts: Merit generated through
keeping the Precepts [sEla]. Keeping the Precepts
ensures that we never take advantage of others through
our physical or verbal actions — and at the same time
we bring no harm to ourselves. You might wonder how
keeping the Precepts can possibly give rise to merit.
When we abandon all thoughts of taking advantage of
others, in their place arises the radiance of merit that
has accrued in the mind. This will have the effect of
quenching heart-felt troubles.
7. Meditation: This means merit generated through
meditation [bhAvanAmaya]. Meditation is a way of
training the mind to become wiser. There are many
different subdivisions to what can be considered as
mind training and these include reading books on
Dhamma, chanting and meditation itself. Meditation
has the effect on the mind of causing the arising of
radiance and distancing the mind from disturbance by
anxiety, limiting its habitual wandering, bringing peace.
Whenever the covering of defilements is banished from
the mind, especially the defilement of ignorance which
usually imprisons the mind in darkness and undermines
its true potential, wisdom will arise in the mind as the
brightness of merit.
8. Listening to Dhamma Sermons:
This
means merit generated through listening to Dhamma
sermons [dhammassavanamaya]. Listening to Dhamma
lectures or sermons on the Dhamma will enhance our
wisdom. Before, we might have had only a rudimentary
understanding of the real nature of the world, but now
as a result of hearing Dhamma Teachings, we know
how to tell the difference between good and evil. Such
an improvement in the level of our wisdom will result
in our accruing merit for ourselves.
9. Giving a discourse on the Dhamma: This means
merit generated through giving a Discourse on the
Dhamma [dhammadesanAmaya] Teaching the
Dhamma by giving a sermon will bring merit to the
preacher in the following ways:
I. Preaching will rid the mind of reluctance to teach
others. Some people are reluctant to share their
wealth with others. Others are reluctant to share their
knowledge with others. Giving a sermon, instructing
others about to lead their lives virtuously, will help
to uproot the trait of keeping valuable knowledge to
oneself.
2. Preaching helps you to revise the different groups
of dhammas. As you preach, you are able to revise
the different groups of dhammas, increasing your
mastery of them. As you recollect those dhammas,
you will be inspired by them and this will bring
radiance to the mind. Mastery also comes through
the necessity to revise from the Dhamma texts,
sometimes two to three weeks in advance of actually
giving the sermon, in order to obtain a profound
understanding of the Dhamma topic in hand before
having to teach it to others.
10. Straightening One's Views: This means merit
generated through Straightening out one's views:
[diEEhujukammamaya]. As the result of listening to a
good sermon, the listener will have the discretion to tell
good from evil, right from wrong. They will no longer
doubt that doing good deeds gives good results or that
doing evil will bring bad results. Before long the mind
is steadfast in the pursuit of good deeds and in the
avoidance of evil. This process is what we mean
EFTA00286555
by correcting our understanding of the world. Once
our understanding is proper, then the deeds of mind,
speech and body will be good and proper too. The
determination will arise in the mind that you will
pursue good deeds for evermore — no longer being
sidetracked into evil or unproductive ways.
Thus if you it hard to remember all ten categories of
meritorious deeds, you can summarize them down to
three major categories: generosity, keeping the Precepts
and meditation.
Dl. Level of mind
The first benefits that merit will bring when it arises are
benefits at the level of the mind. This is one of the most
important benefits because there is no need for one to
wait for the after-life in order to see the results.
Whenever we perform a good or meritorious deed,
merit will arise immediately. If you do a good deed at
night, merit will arise at night. If you do a good deed by
day, merit will arise by day. If you do a good deed on
an aircraft in mid-air, then the merit will arise in our
mind there in mid-air. Wherever you are, if you
perform a meritorious deed, the effect will arise in the
mind instantaneously — it doesn't need much
expenditure of energy for such merit to arise — even
just thinking to do a meritorious deed will cause merit
to arise and will put the mind at ease. There is no need
to wait a long time in order to see the results at the level
of the mind of your meritorious deeds. You don't even
need to wait for someone to admire you for doing such
a good deed. The results of merit will arise
automatically in the mind without you having to do
anything more than good deeds — and the benefits that
arise are as follows:
I. Merit cleanses the mind: When the mind is clean it
is ready to pursue even greater degrees of good deeds.
In the days before we started accruing merit, we
considered that our mind was already pure. However,
as soon as we start doing meritorious deeds, we realize
that our mind has become purer than we ever expected.
Before our mind was as bright as the morning star —
but
now our mind is even brighter, with the radiance of
the full moon. No matter how clouded and dull the
mind might be beforehand, when merit arises in the
mind will clarify the mind just like soap or detergent
cleans the dirt out of a cloth leaving it pristine and
white.
2. Merit raises the quality of the mind: Merit that
arises in the mind helps to filter out defilements which
might otherwise operate in the mind. Merit will
neutralize such negativity in the mind, not allowing
them to affect the spaciousness and lightness or to slow
down the operation of the mind — and having filtered
the mind in this way, the mind is left ready to serve us
in all types of task. The meritorious deeds we do
therefore upgrade the quality of our minds.
3. Merit brings us happiness: When the mind is
purified and filtered by the arising of merit, it gives rise
to radiance and refreshedness of mind which is the
precursor of happiness. Such happiness is not fleeting,
superficial happiness. It is an overflowing of happiness
like on the days we make an offering or a donation at
the temple and we feel refreshed by the goodness of our
action, as if our heart was so big that it filled the whole
of our being.
4. Merit will make the mind more stable: Merit will
make our mind more stable in the face of the worldly
vicissitudes such as being praised or insulted.
5. Merit will make the mind more flexible: The mind
will have increased potential for success with the task
in hand, whether the task be large or small, gross or
refined — whatever the nature of the task, the mind
made flexible will be ready for all eventualities.
6. Merit will make the mind more radiant: it will
increase the potential of the mind to gain insight to
overcome all manner of obstacles that arise in the
course of performing any task.
7. Merit will increase the potential of the mind: You
will begin to notice the difference whenever you apply
your mind to any task. You might overcome the
tendency to lose your temper easily. The mind that is
free from anxiety and
EFTA00286556
cloudedness, that is spacious and pure and steadfast
will be the mind of the highest potential.
8. Merit will allow better decisions to be taken:
Decisions can be made quickly and accurately
without hesitation.
9. Merit will allow a more insightful analysis of any
situation: Thoughts will be 'on the ball' and a correct
analysis of the situation every time.The mind dwells only
on subjects that are skilful. You find yourself unable to
think over anything potentially damaging to your high
state of mind.
IO.Merit will make your thinking thorough and
comprehensive: You will not allow your thought to be
dragged down into shoddiness.
II. Merit will help to make your thought both noble
and deep: Merit will incline your mind towards the
higher things of life and away from the baser side of
life.
All of these features illustrate the general beneficial
effects of merit at the level of the mind. They are
effects that take place equally no matter which of the
ten ways you use to generate merit. However, the
benefits of merit go further than this. They are more
than just a feeling in the heart — leading to rebirth in
more fortunate realms live to come.
D2. Level of Personality
This level of the effects of merit is easier to observe
than the effects on the mind. As we accrue more and
more merit, the general benefits, no matter which way
in which we accumulate merit, will spread to the level
of our personality and will gradually change it for the
better. The changes in our character originate from the
changes mentioned above in the quality of the mind.
I. Merit will bring you physical grace: from your
complexion to your voice and even your physical
proportions — all are attractive and appropriate to the
task of pursuing perfection.
2. Merit will bring knowledge, wisdom and mastery:
because the illumination whch merit brings will awaken
us to the nature of the world as it really is. Anyone who
has set their heart on being smart should start by
cultivating merit.
3. Merit will help to upgrade our tastes and values:
As the mind dwells on matters that are only virtuous
and leaves aside evil thought, thinking things through
thoroughly and in depth, our tastes and values will
change in favour of virtue and morality.
4. Merit will develop our character and personality:
These changes of attitude and and discretion will
express themselves in changes of character and
personality.
£ Merit causes our speech to become skilful: skilful
thought becomes habitual and this causes our speech to
be skilful too.
6. Merit causes our behaviour to improve: Good
speech has its effect on our physical actions and we find
that our behaviour gradually changes for the better. The
way that we express ourselves, our deportment when in
company, no matter where we mix socially, will be
impeccable instead of being vulnerable to all forms of
temptation.
7. Merit strengthens our patience: We no longer drool
over others' possessions. In the olden days, others
might have been suspicious even at the sight of us,
worrying about when we were going to rob them of
their beloved possessions — but now that there is no
more drooling, they can enjoy their wealth in peace.
8. Merit causes us to have more control over our
temper: You certainly wouldn't let yourself be drawn
into a conflict any more. This is another way in which
one's personality changes as the result of upgrading the
quality and potential of the mind.
9. Merit improves our personal appearance: Per-
sonality includes your personal appearance. Merit
accrued will cause our complexion to be soft and
radiant — so much more refreshing than before when
you weren't interested in merit.
IO.Merit will reduce our anxieties: All your mis-
givings and bones you had to pick with others, which
before used to keep you awake at night, will now be
forgiven.
D3. Level of Lifestyle
Merit will take its effect on our mind and our per-
sonality immediately whenever we perform a meri-
torious deed. At the third level, that of the *style,
EFTA00286557
however, we cannot be sure how quickly the benefits
will be manifested because ow quality of lifetime arises
as the result of both present and past deeds. The effects
of good and bad deeds are mixed together inseparably.
When there are so many contributing factors, it
becomes very complex to determine the exact source of
the merit that has given particular benefit in a particular
lifetime. It is just the same as looking at a particular cell
in our body and not knowing which item of food we ate
has nourished that cell. This is part of the reason why
we are often hesitant to believe that doing good deeds
brings good results or that doing bad deeds brings bad
results. Some of the general results of our merit are as
follows:
L Merit will attract success: We will be successful
whatever we turn our hand to.
2. Merit will bring us praise: You will be praised (at
least by the wise);
3. Merit is like a protective armour: which protects us
from dangers and misfortunes like a guardian angel.
4. Merit can lead us to attainment: allow you to make
continuous progress in your meditation.
5. Merit brings us the things that we wish for: Merit
acts like a wish-fulfilling gem.
Another thing which makes the results of merit difficult
to understand at the level of the personality is that apart
from the general benefits, there are also differences in
the way the outcome of merit manifests itself, rather
like different `flavours' associated with the ways by
which merit has been performed.
All Examples of Merit Outcomes
D.3.1.1 Generosity and KAlyanamittata
The benefits that merit brings to different people differs
according to the differences the merits they have
performed. To take a good example — that of
generosity, the likely results of the merits they have
done are as follows:
I. Those who make lonely donations without en-
couraging their friends will be born rich in future
lives, but won't have many friends. They will have
to look hard to find anyone to give them their
friendship or even understand
them;
2. Those who make donations themselves and
encourage others to join them in making merit too
will be born rich in future lifetimes and will have
plenty of friends;
3. Those who don't make donations, but they
encourage their friends to make donations will have
plenty of rich friends, but they will be poor
themselves. If any of your friends are in need, you
will be able to tell them how to solve their problems
instantly — but if you are in need you can do
nothing to help yourself;
4. Those who don't make donations and don't
encourage others to make donations either have a
begging bowl waiting for them in their next life.
They will have no friends either.
D.3.L2 Long life: Long life versus short life
Some people are long-lived because in previous lives
they avoided killing or harming animals. Long life is
useful because it allows one plenty of time to perform
good deeds.
D.3.I.3 Illness: Freedom from illness versus
sickliness
Some people are always in good health. They seem
invulnerable to disease and hardly even know their
doctor. Again good health is the result of having not
been cruel to animals in previous lifetimes.
D.3.1.4
Complexion:
Radiant
versus
dull
complexion
Some people never seem to lose their temper. They
seem to be happy the whole of the time. Such people
have a radiant complexion. By contrast, those who
are moody and whose faces are always in a frown
will have a dull and rough complexion like that of a
frog, however many lifetimes they are born. Thus if
you know yourself to be moody by nature, then try to
improve your character as soon as you can — try
doing the chanting and meditation before you go to
bed each day. If you are angry with anybody in
particular, try to find a way to forgive them and
spread loving
EFTA00286558
kindness towards them. If you are angry with
anybody, don't let the anger last overnight. It's bad
enough to be angry all day — don't let it last to the
next morning.
D.3.1.5 Power: Powerful versus powerless
Some people are born to rule. Wherever they go
others treat them with the utmost respect because in
the past they have always been quick to express their
congratulations [muditA] whenever they have seen
anyone else achieving success andgiven them their
support. As for those who are born powerless and
cowering, the real reason for this is because of their
jealous habits in previous lifetimes. Even if they are
born king, they will be king of a mere vassal state or
if they are born queen, they will be no more than a
secondary consort. If you have the luck to receive a
gift it will be second hand!
D.3.L6 Riches: Rich versus poor
Some are born with a silver spoon in their mouth.
Some are born into a wealthy family. Others families
are poor but start to prosper as soon as they are
conceived so that by the time they are born, their
family is already rich. Others' families are poor but
they start to prosper as soon as the baby is born. Such
occurrences can only happen to someone who has
been generous in his previous lifetimes. Whatever
one chooses to do, it will make one rich. By contrast,
if one has lived by robbery in previous lifetimes then
this lifetime, they will have a begging bowl waiting
for them.
D.3.L7 Social Standing: High v. low social standing
Some people are born with high social standing
— such as being born king or a member of the royal
family or as member of a house of high standing. By
contrast, some are born a beggar's son. They are on
the lowest rung of the social ladder. The Lord
Buddha taught that those who are humble and
respectful of the virtuous will be born in a family of
high social standing. If in this lifetime you pay
respect of high virtue and listen to their teachings,
you will be born in a family of high social standing
next lifetime and others will have the chance to pay
respect to you. The Iva
son why some people are born with low social
standing is that they have lacked humility and
reverence in their dealings with the virtuous in their
previous lifetimes and have been stubborn and
unyielding instead.
D.3.1.8 Intelligence: Intelligent v.s ignorant
Some people are born clever. As soon as they have
the chance to study, all it takes is a single lesson and
they are able to stand up and teach in the teacher's
place. For others, the teacher teaches them the same
thing two or three times and still they can make no
sense of it. They have to rely on their friends to
explain it to them outside lesson time. Even after so
much trouble, they have only a superficial grasp of
what they have learned. They will have to read
through the lesson another ten times if they are to
understand it as well as their peers.
D.4 Level ofSociety
This is the next level at which merit takes its effect. The
result of having done only good deeds all our life
together with the good deeds or merit accumulated over
course of a long time will certainly bring peace,
happiness, harmony, justice, progress and prosperity to
themselves and the people around them. This happens
especially as the result of the collective merit accrued
by the majority of people in society. Merit takes its
effect instantly at the level of the mind (if we are
observant enough to notice it), however the time the
effects take to filter successively though to the levels of
personality, lifestyle and society take proportionally
longer.
El. Speed of Merit Taking Effect
All we have talked about are basically the principal
forces. In fact, as with the dynamics of the karma which
we studied in the previous lesson, all are to some extent
modified by supplementary factors or concomitants,
especially with reference to the speed with which they
give their fruits. The degree to which meritorious deeds
will give their benefits in our lifestyle depends on four
factors which wecall the Four Accomplishments or
Catalysts [samapatti].
EFTA00286559
The Accomplishments arc the factors favourable to the
ripening of good karma just like catalysts which
facilitate a chemical reaction — there arc four of these
in all:
I. Catalytic Circumstances [gatisampatti] and means
that you are born in favourable circumstances or
amenable surroundings in terms of a place to live, a
birthplace or a neighbourhood which will affect us for
the better. To give an example suppose you are born as
someone who is not particularly clever, but fortunately
for you, you are born amidst catalytic circumstances —
born in a prospering community with a good standard
of education available to everyone. Thus with the
application of a little effort in your studies, you can
make up for your lack of innate cleverness with
cleverness learned from your surroundings — the clear
result of the catalytic circumstances.Those in possession
of such circumstancses make it easier for themselves to
further their good deeds during their life — and this is
one way by which merit is self-catalytic.
2. Catalytic Gift of Wellbeing [upadhisampatti] These
refer to the characteristics of one's physical and
personal makeup that facilitate the arising of good
karma. Examples of such "gifts" might be a golden
voice which makes everybody want to listen to what
you have to say (no matter whether it be good or bad!),
a good singing voice (that sounds good even if you
cry!), a beautiful or handsome physique (which can
make you Miss Universe without having to do anything
more than be born and grow up!) Someone who is
gifted in this way, but who instead of sitting on his
laurels, continues to do good deeds all his life will find
that good deeds give their results instantly, before their
very eyes.
3. Catalytic Timing [kAlasampatti] To be at the right
place at the right time in the same way that we talked
about the era of a world cycle when people are born. In
an era where people value virtue manifest themselves
right from the time you are born. You will associate
with the wise right from your childhood. You need
never come under the influence of fools. Throughout
your
life, no matter whether you are generous, keep the
Precepts, meditate or do chanting, you will hear only
words of encouragement from the people around
you, making it easy for us to excel at any of these
practices. Thus the results of one's meritorious
action will be much quicker to see.
4. Catalytic Discretion [payogasampatti]. To be born
with good discretion and more importantly, the moral
fibre to keep to one's principles and apply one's
discretion to one's lifestyle will facilitate the ripening
of good karma. This catalyst is centred on the ability to
teach yourself to improve in all aspects will make you a
born leader never having to wait for others to persuade
you or force you to do beneficial things. Besides being
able to discriminate between right and wrong, good and
bad you will be able to put your ethics into practice.
Such a personal endowment will quicken the speed with
which you see the fruits of your meritorious actions at
the level of the lifestyle.
In conclusion, performing merits will give the fruition
of good deeds instantly at the level of the mind and the
personality. There is no need to waitfor the afterlife for
these things. However, at the level of the lifestyle, you
may have to wait much longer if you have accrued only
a small amount of merit in your past. However, for
those who have a lot of merit in their past lives, they
will see the fruition of merits very quickly in the
present lifetime. Thus those who are still skeptical
about whether doing good deeds will really bring
benefits to us at the level of our lifestyle, should study
the mechanism of catalysts and inhibitors to the fruition
of good karma as outlined in this section.
E2. Why is care needed in the study of merit?
Merit is difficult to understand because the effects of
merit thatwe can see are the result of compounded
causes. Some of the good luck or good coincidences
that we see come from the merit we have stored up for
ourselves from long ago. Some of the good luck will
come from the acts of merit which we have done
recently and which remain in mind. Thus we need to
have an understanding of
EFTA00286560
merit otherwise, looking at the outcomes we might
come to the misunderstood conclusion that good deeds
don't give rise to merit and might give up too easily.
The other aspect is to understand correctly how to do
the sort of good deeds that accrue merit otherwise,
again, we might come to the conclusion that our efforts
to do good deeds have nothing but a disastrous effect
on our future.
Some people have such a strong conviction in merit that
they think that merit and demerit is the only valuable
way of evaluating actions in the world. However, such
a narrow view can lead to some shortcomings of
understanding. To take merit seriously, can inspire you
to do good deeds, avoid evil and purify the mind.
However, as one of the main characteristics of merit is
that it accrues exclusively to the doer of a good deed, it
tends to make Buddhists disinterested in what the
people around them are doing. They may become
interested only in their own personal destiny without
thinking to try and upgrade the state of society or show
concern for the destinies of those around them. Thus,
the benefit of understanding merit is to make the best of
our present to ensure a bright future.
E3. Overcoming shyness to accrue Merit
It is obvious from the examination of our present
circumstances that we are living in a time when the
circumstances of society are not very catalytic anymore.
Because of the difficulty in discerning the fruits of
meritorious action, the majority of people in the world
today:
I. don't know the importance of merit;
2. know the importance of merit but don't know how to
go about accruing it;
3. know how to accrue merit, but because they have not
made merit making an implicit part of their lives, they
are not particularly motivated to accumulate merit.
Some people want to do meritorious deeds, but are too
shy. Some people know that it is good to bow down in
respect to one's parents, but because they didn't make
bowing to their parents part of their everyday life since
they were children, by the time they are old enough to
realize they are too shy to
start something new.
The important thing to overcome the shyness we might
feel in accruing the merit in our lives is to make it a
part of our daily routine so that we don't lose touch
with merit or become unfamiliar. In this respect there
are three important pieces of advice for the practitioner
coined as mottos for those attending Wat Phra
Dhammakaya:
1. Any morning when you have not given alms, you
shouldn't allow yourself to take breakfast: You should
get up in time to give alms to the monks on their
almsround at dawn every day. If there is no monk on
almsround you can always collect up small donations
on a daily basis in a piggy-bank and offer them at the
temple the next time you go. If you can manage to
achieve this, you will avoid poverty in the long-term.
Even if you are not particular), well off in the present
lifetime, you can be assured that if you give alms every
day, eventually you will put an end to the hardship of
financial insecurity.
Z Any day when you don't intend to keep the Precepts
you shouldn't dare to leave the house: Once you have
taken the precepts, you should revise the intention to
keep them every day for the Five Precepts. At the very
least you will always be within the protection of the
Five Precepts — like an armour of morality. This merit
is the second major investment we have to make in our
life to ensure our enduring wellbeing.
3. Any evening when you haven't done your chanting
and meditation, don't dare to go to bed: If you can
manage to do your chanting and meditation every day,
no matter how tired you are, you will be like the
warrior who is ever ready for battle, with his sword
already sharpened by his side.
If you start today and train yourself in all three of these
ways, you will be like a soldier ready for battle with
strength, a supply of provisions, a suit of armour and a
weapon already sharp and ready for battle. However
many times you go to war, you will be victorious every
time. If you start living a lifestyle by which you accrue
merit today, you will start
EFTA00286561
to get the benefits today. There's no need to wait for
next lifetime before starting your good deeds because
whether you will have the chance to do good deeds or
not in your next life is dictated by the amount of good
deeds you do in this lifetime. Thus start doing good
deeds today, this very how, at this very second.
In addition to the merit you cultivate as a matter of
course in your everyday life, you should look for
opportunities to increase your store of merit on special
occasions such as offering saIghadAna (offering a meal
to the monastic community), go for a longer meditation
retreat, ordain temporarily for the course of the rainy
season. Don't go thinking that you already have plenty
of merit stored up from your past. You may be wrong.
If you really had a lot of merit in your past, you would
be able to sit comfortably for the whole of the hour long
meditation session. If you still feel uncomfortable when
you meditate or feel that you have to change posture,
that is the sign that you still have room for
improvement in the merit you have stored up for
yourself. You need to use the precious life of yours to
rectify your faults and weaknesses — and the best way
to do this is to do as many good deeds as you can.
Otherwise the hunger of the mind will go on unabated
FL Metaphor: Merit in the Past - Pedigree
The nature of the differences is not the same as the
pot-bound bonsai of the previous Blessing. It is not
caused by the environment— the difference lies within
the person himself — it is a personal attribute which
differs in strength from one person to another. Compare
a wild strawberry with a domestic breed of strawberry.
You can water and fertilize a wild strawberry all you
like, but in the end it will only produce a lot of leaves
and a few tiny bitter fruits. By contrast, a domestic
strain, even if neglected will produce numerous and
succulent fruits. The difference is factor which belongs
to the plant itself. With plants it is the pedigree, but
with people it is the residue of the behaviours they have
built up for themselves in the past — not a reputation
because that needs a third party to remember it — it is
something they build up inside them whether they have
witnesses for their behaviour or not.
F2. Metaphor: Merit - Food for the Mind
All dynamic things in the world have fuel on which they feed.
Fire burns on brushwood. A tree needs food, but the food that
nourishes it is sucked up through the roots. The body burns on
physical food. To get the food we need for our body we must
find ourselves a job or a career. A light bulb burns on electric
current. Sometimes the energy is stored up in the object itself
at a previous time (like the bulb of a daffodil or a car battery),
sometimes the energy is used as it is obtained. All of these
things must be provided with the fuel they need or else one
day if the energy they have stored is exhausted, they will
become useless or even die.
All of these objects have their own food or fuel to nourish
them, but as meditators, the object we are most interested
in is the mind. The mind too, must have a food which can
fuel its efficient activity, but what could possibly function
as a sort of energy which the mind could store or use?
Indeed, the personal residue we are talking about has
the special quality of being like food which nourishes
the mind — so that the mind can, to itsfull potential
attract good opportunities and things on all four levels
of success mentioned above. If mind is well fed it has
repurcussions for all the other levels too — sooner or
later.
F3. Ex. Siri JAtaka(J.284)
The bodhisattva was once an ascetic and had an
elephant trainer as a patron. A stick-gatherer, sleeping
at night in the hermitage, heard two roosting cocks
abusing each other. In the course of the quarrel, one
cock boasted that whoever ate his flesh would be king,
his skin commander in chief or chief queen and his
bones, royal treasurer or king's chaplain. The man
killed the cock and his wife cooked it, then taking it
with them, they went to the river to bathe. They left the
meat and rice on the bank, but as they bathed, the pot
holding the food was blown into the river. It
EFTA00286562
floated downstream where it was picked up by the
elephant-trainer. The bodhisattva saw everything with
his divine-eye and visited the trainer at meal-time.
There he was offered the meat and divided it, giving the
flesh to the trainer, the skin to his wife and keeping the
bones to himself. Three days later, the city was
beseiged by enemies. The king asked the trainer to don
royal robes and mount the elephant, while he himself
fought in the ranks. There the king was killed by an
arrow and the trainer, having won the battle, was made
king, his wife being queen and the ascetic his chaplain.
The story was told in reference
to a brahmin who tried to steal AnAthapiAlika's good
fortune [ski]. He perceived that the good fortune was
embodied in a white cock for which he begged.
AnAthapiAlika gave it to him, but the good fortune left
the cock and settled in a jewel. He asked for that also,
but the good fortune went into a club. The club was also
asked for, and AnAthapiAlika giving it, asked the
brahmin to take it and be gone. However, the good
fortune now settled on AnAthapiAlika's wife. The
brahmin thereby admitted defeat and confessed his
intentions to AnAthapiAlika who told the story to the
Buddha.
EFTA00286563
Blessing Six: Setting
oneself up properly
in life
A. INTRODUCTION
Al. Place of Blessing Six in the order of things
This sixth blessing is the last of the second grouping of
blessings concerned with "turning towards virtue". It
builds upon what has gone before with the "nurture" of
Blessing Four and the "nature" of Blessing Five —
bringing spiritual development to a point where the
third grouping "making oneself useful" can start to
become meaningful.
A2. Objectives of the Sixth Blessing
Studying this Blessing can be considered to have
fulfilled its true purpose if after reading it, the reader
feels:
I. inspired to stand on their own two feet: that is, to
promise themselves that this lifetime they will never
again lower themselves to relying on anyone else as
their refuge — no longer using others as crutches for
their own weaknesses. The people of old used to say
'Even a bird builds its own nest — even a mouse digs
its own hole — so who is a man not to stand on his own
two feet? It is not fitting always to be leaning on others,
borrowing from them or living in someone else's house.
Othenvise one is no better than a sparrow living in the
rafters of someone else's house. If you are the sort of
person who is not ashamed of being dependent but who
is on the other hand proud that there are always others
who wants to help them, it will probably be a
long time before you realize the reality of the world.
It's no problem if you happen to live in your big
sister's house, but what happens if one day her
husband has a disagreement with you and wants you
out of the house? You will find it hard to speak up in
your own defense. Even if you have a disagreement
with their children or grandchildren or friends, you
would never dare to say anything to contradict them
because you depend on their parents or grandparents
for the roof over ow head. You end up being
someone who will not even dare to stand up for
yourself
- therefore, if at all possible, try to avoid depending on
others — try to be self-sufficient. No matter whether you
are male or female, you have to try to be independent. If
you are put in the position where you are abused as a
dependent, you have no choice but to put up with it. When
you have put up with it until such abuse becomes
engrained in your mind, you can no longer think of
anything meritorious any more. All you can think of is
getting your revenge. Better then, to build up your own
standard of living by becoming self-sufficient in your
earnings.
Z inspired never to provaricate about accruing merit
henceforth.
If after studying this Blessing the reader gains anything
more in addition to these two advantages, it can be
considered as a profit. For anyone to understand about
the importance of being your own ref-
EFTA00286564
uge and to see the value of accruing merit, you need a
foundation of experience, and that foundation is
specifically one's aim in life.
Al Definition: Setting oneself up properly in life
Setting yourself up in the proper way refers to setting
up both of the inseparable parts of our being
— setting up our body and setting up our mind. As the
mind governs the setting up of the body, to set
ourselves up in life means setting up our mind cor-
rectly. Setting up yourself means setting up your mind.
If your mind can be properly set up, then the body will
follow suit. For example if your mind is overcome with
laziness, the body will be overcome by laziness too,
lying around in a post-prandial sleaze. If the mind has a
clear idea about what it is aiming for in spiritual
development, then the body will comply with the
mind's ambitions. Thus to set yourself up properly in
life, you must set up your mind properly, and that
means specifically making up your mind to pursue a
pathway of self-perfection.
is because we give them too much importance and put
them too high on our list of priorities that they rob us of
our time — the reason in turn, why we are unable to set
our priorities as we mean to, is because we lack a clear
perspective of our own priorities. With meditation, we
are dealing with a practice and a tradition, which has
lifelong consequences for us. Therefore, for the practice
of meditation and for the setting of complimentary
priorities in life, we cannot afford to overlook a clear
perspective of our own lives. We call such an overview
our 'aim in life'. If as meditators, we have a clear aim
in life, as intelligent human beings, we will be able to
use our wisdom to lead our own lives according to ow
principles. If we have no principles and no direction,
more often than not, instead of leading our lives, ow
lives tend to lead us!
AS. Everyone has an aim in life
Life seems to vary in its perceived value fromperson to
person. Some people have had the ambition since
primary school to become a millionaire. Some have
always wanted to become primeminister. Some want to
sbe a soccer champion. Aim in life seems to be different
for different people, however, if you look at the deeper
nature of all people, ultimately all people aim improve
themselves. Some people want to improve themselves
to the utmost by purifying their mind within the space
of their lifetime to a point where they can enter upon
Nirvana. Others might not be in so much of a hurry —
but it doesn't mean that their spiritual path will not pass
the same way some day.
A4 Aim in life helps us set priorities, overcome obstacle
Did you ever feel that you would like to achieve more
from life but you never seem to have to the time — or
you never seem to get round to doing them? Sometimes
you have so many great plans in mind, but when you
come round to doing them, there is always something
else to help others with. There is always something else
more urgent or seemingly more important? Do you find
yourself exhausted at the end of the day with no
strength left to do your meditation? All of us know that
meditation makes a significant difference to the quality
of ow minds, but even though we know it, it is
sometimes difficult to find the time to meditate each
day.
Part of the reason for this is that our priorities and aims
in life are not clear. Sometimes there are urgent things
in life which are urgent but not important, like a ringing
telephone or interruptions and they can upset the whole
pace of our lives. They can be the things that make us
unable to organize our time as we would like to.
Sometimes these interruptions are really unavoidable,
but usually, it
A6. Virtues for creating purpose in everyday life
Anyone who wishes to create and maintain focus and
purpose in their life needs to train themselves in the
following
five
virtues
called
'core
virtues'
[sAradhamma] by the Lord Buddha:
I. Faith or Confidence [saddha]: This means believing
in the appropriate things. It means training yourself to
be reasonable — not to be gullible. The difference
between being faithful and being gullible is that the
latter has no reason for their confidence. Thus wisdom
is always an im
EFTA00286565
portant component of faith. From the Buddhist point
of view, the basis of faith is:
I. the existence of the Buddha
2. the working of the Law of Karma — that doing
good deeds really gives rise to good results (with the
proviso of doing those good deeds properly,
sufficiently and not in excess)
3. that the result of one's good or bad karma will
follow one until it gives its retribution.
2. The Precepts [sEla]: You must keep the minimum of
Five Precepts (for more explanation see Blessing Nine).
3. Having heard much [bahEsEta]: be specific, this
means being diligent in the acquisition of knowledge
both spiritual and worldly by listening to many
teachings.
4. Being a person of self-sacrifice [cAga]: This means
being able to sacrifice and let go both of material
possessions (given to others) and also to let go of our
grudges and bad temper by forgiving others
5. Training Oneself in Meditation [samAdhi]: We
need to train ourselves in meditation if we are to have
any chance of attaining wisdom. Wisdom is the most
essential element in having a well-planned aim in life
and being able to keep ourselves to it. If the mind is
trained in meditation it will have the determination to
remain unscathed in the face of temptations to "lower
our sights" and settle for less ambitious aims in life.
I. Exclusively Materialistic Aim In Life: Everybody
comes into the world with nothing, but everyone has
the same basic needs for survival whether it be the food
on their plates, the clothes on their backs, the roof over
their head or the medicine they need to keep them
healthy in times of illness. If any one of these things are
lacking from people's lives, they cannot survive. Man
can only go for a single day without water. He can only
go for seven days without food. Thus it is only natural
that the very least that people should aim for in their
lives is to fulfill these basic physical needs. If their aim
in life is any lower that this they cannot survive. Of
Course some
people want more that this. Some people are not
satisfied with the basics of survival. They want to be
millionaires, they want luxury, they want the
freedom in life to choose what they buy. In fact
however much you want, whether it is just to fulfill
their physical needs or to satisfy their physical
wants, their aim in life is only quite short term. It is
based on immediate rewards. They think of no
further requirement of life beyond death. In their
youth they seek experience, in their middle age they
amass wealth. Towards the end of their lives they try
to find an heir for their wealth. Thus we call such
aims in life "earthly" because they extend no further
than this world and this existence. Those who
entertain only such an aim in life will usually (but
not always — some people cut corners) want to earn
their living in an honest way, by earning, saving,
using their earnings in a responsible way and
entrusting honest people to look after common
wealth.
Z Spiritual/Material Aim In Life: At the same time in
the world, there are those who recognize that they must
fulfill the physical needs of the body, but their aim in
life runs deeper than that. They recognize that they
need to earn their living, but earning that living is only
a means to an end. They recognize that there exists not
only a physical hunger, but the hunger of the spirit or
the mind too. They realize that if the mind is left
hungry it will tempt them to do things they don't want
them to do. They need to find time in their lives to
reach for a higher spiritual dimension.
3. Exclusively Spiritual Aim In Life: Last of all in the
world there are those who realize the hunger of the
body and the mind — the body for physical needs and
the mind in its hunger for a higher spiritual dimension
to life. For such a group of people the sensitivity
towards the hunger in the mind is so great that they find
that they have the vocation to deal with source of the
hunger at its root. So great is the intensity of their
calling that they will see the need to devote themselves
full time to the pursuit of spirituality. To purify
themselves completely so that hunger may be
completely extinguished. They have the
EFTA00286566
time to devote to spiritual study without having to
compromise their time in order to earn a living.
They will spend their time learning the spiritual way
and teaching it to the best of their ability so
intensively that the life of the householder and the
family no longer holds any attraction for them. We
call such an aim in life ultimate because is seeks to
come to an end of all further suffering and to help
others to do the same.
B1. Exclusively Materialistic
Setting yourself up in a proper way for those with an
exclusively materialistic aim in life consists of two
conwslesniffig evil
2. standing on your own two feet The Buddha's short
teaching of the way to set yourself up in the proper way
is probably too short for
the reader to know how to practice it so we have to
expand a little further on the subject matter
81.1 Avoiding Evil
Avoiding evil means specifically to avoid the six `roads
to ruin' [apAyamukha]. We must avoid them in order
to avoid falling into any of the unfortunate realms in
future existences. 'Ruin' [apAya] here means 'low-
down', 'dirty', 'decaying' and 'lacking prosperity'. The
word 'road' [mulcha] means 'path', 'front' or 'face'.
There are six different types of 'roads to ruin':
1. Drinking alcohol or taking intoxicating drugs:
like opium or heroin;
I. Nightlife: such as frequenting brothels;
2.
Frequenting shows: that have content that is
romantic or frivolous;
3.
Gambling: and lotteries
4.
Associating with evil companions
5.
Being too lap, to work
We will not go into further detail of these'roads to ruin'
here. In some places only four 'roads to ruin' are
referred to instead of six as mentioned already in
Blessing One (§E.3) as the sort of thing that fools like
to persuade you to do.
B1.2 Standing on you own two feet
In the time of the Buddha, there was someone who
asked the way to set himself up in life. The four
practices he taught are sometimes called the four
chambers of the millionaire's heart. They are the
prerequisite virtues for accruing benefit in the present
life (in Pali the diEEhadhammikatthapayojana). For
revision take a look back at Blessing Two (§C4.1). In
conclusion, anyone who is diligent in acquisition of
wealth, in stewardship of their earnings, who associates
only with good friends and who uses their earnings to
support themselves in a modest way will before long
achieve riches. All of this hard work will only be of
benefit to us in the present lifetime however. If you also
want benefits in future lifetime, you need to know how
to accrue merit too.
B2. Material/SpiritualAim
Setting yourself up in a proper way for those with a
spiritual/material aim in life consists of three com-
ponents:
I. avoiding evil
2. standing on your own hvo feet
3. cultivating virtuous speech and action Avoiding evil
and standing on your own two feet are the same as for
those with the exclusively materialistic aim in life.
However, on this level we have the addition of virtuous
speech and action. This means immersing our mind
filly in meritorious speech and action. The way this is
achieved is to practice the Ten or the Three Major
Ways to Accrue Merit [pulifiakiriyavatthu] already
discussed in Blessing Five (§C2). The guiding
principles for accruing merit are the prerequisite virtues
to accruing benefit in future lives [sampayikattha
payojana]. For revision take a look back at Blessing
Two (§C4.2) and Blessing Four (§B4.6).
B2.I Warnings about prevarication
On the subject of setting oneself up in life, there are
several common misconceptions which you ought to
avoid:
I. Don't wait until you are old before getting spiritual:
You should devote yourself to spiritual practice starting
from the time when you are still young and healthy. In
fact even to start temple-going from the time you are
twenty is still too late. If you start temple-going from
the age of
EFTA00286567
five or six, like RAhula in the time of the Buddha, it
is your advantage. You should start studying the
spiritual side of yourself early in life so that you
don't make grave moral errors. How many of us
spend many years drinking alcohol and damaging
our minds before we realize what we are doing to
ourselves? You can bypass the problem completely
if you attend the temple from your youth.
2. Don't prevaricate about setting yourself up in life:
You should work hard to make yourself self-sufficient in
life at the earliest possible opportunity — anyone who is
still a parasite living in someone else's house should be
quick to make yourself independent.
3. Don't prevaricate about paying off your debts: Don't let
your debts be something you carry with you to your next life!
The interest on loans that span into the afterlife are too high to
be worth risking slow repayment. Thus pay off your debts and
make sure that you don't put yourself in debt any more. You
should build up your own financial reserves before making an
investment, not rely on borrowing from others or from the
bank. If you die before you have paid back your loan, next
lifetime you will have that debt hanging round your neck like
a dead albatross. Suppose you borrow a dollar but die before
you can pay it back — supposing you are an angel for a thou-
sand years — just think what the compound interest will add
up to during that time! You might never manage to pay it
back.
4. Don't prevaricate about improving on your bad habits:
If you know anything about yourself is a bad habit, give
up doing it immediately. Check your own behaviour as a
regular part of your practice and improve on yourself
instead of wasting time finding fault with others.
5. Be careful of bad deeds in the guise of good ones:
When you have done a good deed, don't go wishing for
things that are irresponsible.
B3. Exclusively spiritual
Even the Bodhisattva himself needed an aim in life
when pursuing perfections in preparation for Bud
dhahood. Thus it comes as no surprise that on the
exclusively spiritual level of aim in life, it is still
important to have an aim in life, in order to waste no
time in pursuing the goal of purifying the mind to a
point where it can enter upon Nirvana. On this level,
even material convenience is sacrificed in order fully to
cultivate spiritual development.
B3.I Human Realm as the crossroads of existence
The clearer one's aim in life, the more clearly one will
understand the preciousness of human life — and that
we cannot afford to waste a moment. Even if you look
around your house, of which you pride yourself as
being the owner, if you count the number of fleas,
mosquitos, ants and mice, you will realize that you are
in the minority — even though it's your house! This is
intended to give you an inkling of how rare it is to be
born human and what a precious opportunity our human
lifespan is in forging our destiny. In our human
company there are basically four sorts of pathway of
human destiny forged during a lifespan (A.ii.85):
1. Out of the darkness into the darkness: Born with all
the disadvantages of nature and nurture, they did what
came naturally and made a worse mess out of their
lives;
2. Out of the darkness into the light: In spite of ample
disadvantages of nature and nurture, they struggled
against hardship until being able to make some sort of
success out of their lives;
3. Out of the light into the darkness: In spite of all the
advantages of nature and nurture, they became
complacent and made a mess out of their lives.
4. Out of the light into the light: Avoiding the trap of
complacency, they built on the advantages of nature
and nurture they brought into the world, storing up a
yet brighter future for themselves.
The human realm is like a crossroads where destiny can
be transformed for the better or for the worse. For sure,
transforming one's destiny for the better means going
against the tide. Spiritual cultivation is often hard in the
beginning, but pays off in the long-term — something
that may not be immediately obvious to someone who
sees everything
EFTA00286568
in the short-term. Therefore a proper aim in life is vital
for anyone navigating the human crossroads who wants
to make a success in forging a brighter destiny.
B12 Prerequisites for fulfilling the Highest Aim in Life
In a Buddhist context, fulfilment of Highest Aim in
Life, the fruition of all levels of cultivation is to purify
the mind completely or to enter upon Nirvana. In order
to fulfil this goal six conditions must be fulfilled—
without these six prerequisites, all our effort in setting
an aim in life will be in vain. These six prerequisites
are:
I. You have to have been born in an amenable location
i.e. Blessing Four
2. You must have done good deeds until used to them
i.e. Blessing Five
4 - 6. The Four Accomplishments already met as
catalysts determining the speed with which merit
can take its effect as described in Blessing Five
These six factors go together as a set of conditions
known as the Six Catalysts or Accomplishments:
I. Catalytic Circumstances [gatisamapati]
2. Catalytic Timing [kAlasampatti]
3. Catalytic Location [padesasampatti]
4. Catalytic Family [kulasampatti]
5. Catalytic State of Well-being [upadhisampatti]
6. Catalytic View [diEEhisampatti] If you find that you
are hampered in setting yourself up in life in the way
you would wish, perhaps you have to consolidate
Blessing Four and Blessing Five to contribute sufficient
Accomplishments
to your spiritual quest to give you the 'escape velocity'
you need to forge your destiny to the full!
Cl Metaphor: Boat must have a rudder
If the ship that must struggle to make way in the ocean
waves is to reach the far shore, its captain must have a
clear destination in mind and keep the ship firmly on
course, not allowing the ship to drift — no less
important is an aim in life to those wishing to achieve
success and profit in their lives.
C2 Metaphor: The one-eyed sea turtle
(Sv.455)
The Lord Buddha taught that the birth of someone as a
human is as rare as the chance of a blind turtle in the
ocean which surfaces for air once a century popping its
head through the middle of the only flower garland
which happens to be floating in the sea. The chance of a
being which is a denizen of hell, an animal, a ghost or a
demon attaining human birth is even slighter
still.Therefore having obtained yourself a human birth
make sure you make the best of your life.
C3 Metaphor: Saving for the Future
Just as a wise merchant must keep aside someof his
money for investment in the future, the wise man must
keep aside some of his time for the practices that will
allow him to renew his merit for future lifetimes. Just as
the wise fanner keeps aside some of his rice crop for
next year's sowing, the wise man will take the
opportunity while his old merit is still giving its fruit, to
accrue new merit for use in future existences.
C4 Er.: The Retribution of Kapila Bhikkhu
DIktiv.37ff
In the time of the Lord Buddha named Kassapa, there
was a gang of five hundred thieves who were bringing
misery to the whole of the kingdom. The householders,
together with the police and the army thus hunted down
the gang and when the thieves saw that they could no
longer defend themselves, they escaped into the forest.
The vengeful householders did not give up chase and so
the thieves went deeper and deeper into the forest until
they came to a clearing in the heart of the forest. There
they met a monk, and seeing the monk, they started to
see the error of their ways. They were receptive to what
the monk had to say, and the monk taught them that
they must keep the Precepts even if it cost them their
lives. In any case, if they were to be caught, no-one
would spare their lives be
EFTA00286569
cause they had already murdered so many people. The
thieves took the Five Precepts and didn't try to escape
any more. They concentrated all their attention on
keeping the Precepts pure. They would not hurt even a
mosquito or a leech. Even if the soldiers were to catch
up with them and attack them with swords and knives,
they swore not to put up a fight.
Before long, the soldiers discovered the thieves and attacked.
The thieves kept their word and put up no resistance — they
were so devoted to keeping their Precepts pure. All five
hundred thieves were executed, but through the power of
keeping the Precepts to the degree they would sacrifice their
lives, their bad deeds didn't have the chance to catch up with
them. They were born instantly as angels. The evil of their
past did not disappear, however, but was waiting for the
opportunity to give its retribution.
When they were reborn from the celestial world into the
human realm, the influence of the killing they had done in the
past still affected them. All five hundred were born as
fishermen in the same village. However, even though their
livelihood was to kill fish, through the power of their good
deeds in the past, they all still had faith in Buddhism. Even so,
the fishermen continued to collect demerit as a result of their
habitual killing.
One day a group of fishermen caught a giant,
golden-coloured fish — as big as a boat. No-one had
ever seen such a fish in their lives. They captured the
fish and took it to offer to King Pasenadi of Kosala —
who in turn took the fish to the Buddha. As soon as the
fish opened its mouth, a foul smell spread all around the
Jetavana monastery. The king then asked the Buddha
why such a beautiful fish should have such a foul smell.
The Enlightened One then revealed that in one of his
past existences, the fish had been a learned bhikkhu
named Kapila during the time of Kassapa Buddha.
Because of his deep knowledge of the Dhamma, he had
gained much fame and honour. He also became very
conceited and
looked down upon the other bhikkhus. When the other
bhikkhus pointed out to him what was proper or not
proper, he invariably retorted, 'How much do you
know?' implying that he knew much more than those
bhikkhus. In the course of time, most of the bhikkhus
avoided him. On one occasion,the bhikkhus did not join
him when he was reciting the Fundamental Precepts for
the bhikkhus (i.e., the PAEimokkha). Observing that the
bhikkhus remained silent, Kapila said, 'There is no such
thing as Sutta, Abhidhamma or Vinaya..lt makes no
difference whether you listen to the PAEimokkha or not'
and left the congregation. He had taught the Dhamma to
others in a way that was biased in the monk's self
interest — in a way that made his teaching deviate from
the truth. His misrepresentation of the Dhamma was thus
perpetuated amongst his followers.
There were many others including his teacher and
arahants who had warned that monk of the danger of
his misrepresentation of the Dhamma
— however he would not listen. He insulted them in
return for their advice. As a result he developed False
View and when he passed away, these False Views
dragged him down into the Unfortunate Realms for a
long time. Only then could he be born as a fish. The
Precepts of a monk gave their fruit as the beautiful
golden appearance of the fish but the retribution from
insulting arahants and his teacher gave him his stinking
mouth. Hearing the previous karma of the fish, the
five-hundred fishermen considered all the evil deeds
they had done as a result of their livelihood since their
youth. They realized that their time in hell would
certainly be no less than the fate of the fish they had
caught — so they decided collectively all to become
monks and to devote themselves to Dhamma practice.
From the power of having sacrificed their lives for their
Precepts in a previous existence — i.e. having set
themselves up properly in life — before long they could
all become arahants and were no longer subject to the
retribution of the evil karma of their past.
EFTA00286570
CS Ex. Akkosaka BhAradvAja Vatthu DhAdv.161ff
In the time of the Buddha there was a Brahmin couple. The
husband called BhAradavAja was very strict in his
Brahmin observances. He had never shown any interest in
Buddhism. By contrast, his wife was a person with no
further doubt in Buddhism because she had heard one of
the teaching of the Buddha and had become enlightened as
a stream-enterer as the result.
One day the husband wanted to hold a feast for all the most
high standing Brahmins — worshipped as 'arahants' in their
religion. Thus the husband and wife started their elaborate
preparations for the feast, but when it came close to the 'big
day', because it was the habit of the wife always to exclaim
'Buddhof whenever something surprised her, her husband
appealed to her on the day of the feast not to mention
anything about Buddhism or to say anything in praise of the
Triple Gem. The wife said, "My mind is unified with the
Dhamnta, therefore whatever I say will also be Dhamma —
there is nothing you can do to stop my mind from being that
way!"
"And what about if I take a sword and cut you into
small pieces — will that help you to educate your
mind?'
"Even if you were to make mincemeat of me," said the
wife, "I could not help myself from having the
Dhamma as my refuge!"
The husband didn't know what more to say
— so they got on with the work of providing the feast.
Everything went well until the wife slipped over on a
pile
of
spilled
rice.
She
exclaimed,
"Namo
tassabhagavato arahato sammA sambuddh-assa!"
Everyone present heard the wife's exclamation. The
assembled Brahmins were angered by what they heard.
When they had received the invitation, they understood
that the wife had respect for them. Now they had found
out that she respected not them but the Buddha. They
were specially angry because they were opposed to
everything the Buddha did. Those who had finished
their meal immediately stood up and
shouted insults at the couple. Those who had not
finished eating overturned every plate of food on the
table. They stamped their feet and walked out on the
couple.
The husband was so angry he didn't know what to say. He
couldn't do anything to punish his wife — so he thought to
take out his anger on his wife's teacher — the Buddha
himself. lie buckled on his sword and turned in the direction
of Jetavana monastery with the intention to put an end to the
Buddha and his teachings. The husband walked straight up to
the Buddha without paying respect and in his anger shouted
the rhetorical question at the Buddha, "Do you know what a
man has to kill in order to get a good night's sleep...?"
The Brahmin thought that putting an end to the Buddha
was the only way he could save face and sleep soundly
that night. Without waiting for an answer, the Brahmin
continued, "... and what a man has to kill to cure his
sorrow? .. .".
And still without waiting for an answer, the Brahmin
asked the Buddha, ". . . and so what form of killing
would you support?"
The Buddha knew what was on the mind of the Brahmin and
coolly answered the first question with the words, "A man
must kill his anger in order to get a good night's sleep. If you
don't kill your anger, you will do things that you regret later,
being put in prison or punished — but if you kill your anger,
you don't need to undergo the sorrowful consequences of your
angry deeds. The Noble Ones praise the killing of anger —
whose root is poison and whose crown is sweet."
When the Buddha said that the root of anger is
poisonous, he meant that anger has suffering as its
result. When he said that the crown is sweet, he meant
that we get a strange, twisted satisfaction out of
expressing our anger to others or losing our temper.
After hearing only these few words, BhAradavAja was
impressed. He was impressed that the Buddha was not
angry in response to his anger. He had prepared his
sword to chop the Buddha to pieces at the first
unwelcome
EFTA00286571
word, but instead of hearing anything to irritate him
further, the Brahmin had been impressed by every one
of the Buddha's reasoning. He threw away his sword
and invited the Buddha to teach him further. In the end,
he was motivated to practise the Dhamma further and
ended up ordaining as a monk.
Killing your anger is one way of setting yourself up in
life. To ordain as the result of a teaching is to set
yourself up in faith, in the Precepts, in Wisdom or in
Meditation. It was in this
intense
way
that
BhAradavAja set himself up in life, and before long
could practice until attaining arahantship
EFTA00286572
f
The Third
Group of Blessings
"Setting Oneself up in Life"
The third group of the blessings of life is often referred to as "mak-
ing yourself useful". This doesn't just refer to making oneself a citi-
zen who can contribute something positive to society, it means be-
ing able to be of independent means — to earn one's own living
without having to rely on outsiders for help. The principle of "be-
ing a refuge to yourself" is one very important to Buddhism — not
just a virtue to oneself in spiritual ways but in worldly ways as
well. Not burdening oneself on society is seen not only as the basis
of self-confidence, but also as a positive virtue to be encouraged.
Earning one's living requires both knowledge and skills (found in
Blessings Seven and Eight respectively) but as usual to earn one's
living in an unscrupulous way to the detriment of others is not ac-
ceptable. Sociable application of our knowledge and skills is taught
in action and word respectively in Blessings Nine and Ten respec-
tively to make sure that we don't make ourselves self-sufficient at
society's expense. This foundation of lack of worry concerning one's
daily bread will serve as a foundation for a harmonious family life
and public works to be found in subsequent Groups of the Bless-
ings. All of the previous six Blessings we have studied, have con-
cerned the adjustment of our quality of mind. The first few Bless-
ings have concerned protecting our mind from damage and find-
ing the most bask virtue of discretion with which to instil the mind.
In the sixth blessing we already set our sights on the aim in life we
require — now in the third grouping we start to walk toward that
goal.
EFTA00286573
TABLE 7.1 COMPARISON OF QUALITIES FOR THE LEARNED & THE WISE
The Learned
The Wise
much knowledge maybe not much virtue maybe do
not apply knowledge to do good deeds must have
good memory must be educated no guarantee that they
will not make a mess out of their life
maybe not much knowledge much virtue use what knowledge
they have to do good deeds not necessary to have good
memory irrespective of literacy or education will not make a
mess of his life
EFTA00286574
Blessing Seven:
Artfulness in
Knowledge
A. INTRODUCTION
In fact the subject matter of the seventh Blessing also
concerns our mind but it deals with the way we can find
knowledge to instil in the mind.
Knowledge has many implications both for our own life
and for the quality of life in society. Without worldly
knowledge we could not set ourselves up in life by
earning our own living. Without spiritual knowledge, we
would leave the thirst of the unanswered spiritual
questions in life unquenched. For society,
knowledgeable people contribute to the quality and
standard of living in general. If students are demotivated
or inefficient in their efforts to study, the repurcussions
can bring damage to the whole educational sector and
the youth in particular. Incidence of gang-fighting
between schools, student drug-addiction and `hanging
out' on the street in search of trouble are all signs of
social problems originating in an incapacity to study
properly. Even the depreciation of the credability of the
teaching profession has something to do with an
inability to inspire children to enjoy learning. The
problem is not entirely to be blamed on schools however
— as we have seen in preceding blessings, a negative
parental role model or a bad home environment can
damage a child's character so severely, even before
starting school — to an extent that the best of teachers
can do nothing to rectify the situation.
A.1 Problems & risks facing students in general
The ideal student is someone who never tires of learning
new things either about worldly or spiritual matters. It is
not enough just to be curious — to learn in depth, a
student needs to have a real respect for the knowledge they
are learning.
The reality of student life is that there are many things
to interfere with the students' enthusiasm to learn. The
student's disillusionment can be summarized into three
different groups: loss of sense of responsibility towards
their own sense of human dignity; loss of sense of
responsibility towards the sense human dignity of
others, and; loss of sense of responsibility towards a fair
economy:
1. Loss of responsibility towards own sense of human
dignity may lead to:
I. Early Signs of False View: Not bothering to keep
the Five Precepts, ignorance of the Five Precepts or
even going so far as to protest against the keeping of
the Five Precepts — as a result of the example or
persuasion of teachers;
2. Expression of the Defilements of Action: Taking
the lives or being cruel to people or animals,
stealing, committing adultery or sexual intercourse
outside marriage and telling lies.
3. Loss of 'aim in life': leading to a general lack of
motivation to study or develop oneself and
consequent lack of preparation to learn new skills,
fit into society or work for a living.
EFTA00286575
2. Loss of responsibility towards the sense of human
dignity of others: if teachers or lecturers fail to inspire
the students by their example of ethical living, students
will have no feeling of responsibility towards the
human dignity of others or of society in general.
Consequently they may:
1. Profit from natural resources at the expense of
the environment: if the students are only interested
in the short-term gains of a particular item of
knowledge, but fail to consider or be taught about
the long-term consequences (e.g They may pull up
trees to facilitate access by profitable farm
machinery, but in so doing cause erosion of the top
soil)
2. Always put the blame on others: This is a very
basic form of bias often arising as a result of never
having been praised by their teacher or lecturer.
Never having seen their teacher praise the good
points of others, they assume that picking on others'
faults is normal and they are the only infallible
person in the world.
3. Persuades friends to be delinquent: For the con-
venience of keeping company with those of similar
habits as themselves, disillusioned students persuade
their friends to participate in various forms of
delinquent behaviour such as truancy or "doing
drugs".
3. Loss of responsibility towards the sense of economic
fairness: If teachers fail to instil self-discipline in their
students, the students will have no sense of responsibility
towards a fair economy, specifically by:
1. Unwholesome Livelihood: like selling drugs, petty
theft, telephone prostitution or gambling;
2. Addiction to the Six 'Roads to Ruin':
3. Worshipping Money: When money becomes the
most important thing, it is unlikely that a person will
have any concern for the state of their family, of the
nation or the religion. It is like the aphorism often
heard on the lips of modern youth that "ideals don't
keep the wolf from the door".
A.2 Definition: Artfulness in Knowledge
The word sbahEsEta' in the Pali means literally 'one
who has heard much'. It refers to being learned by
having heard much both in spiritual and worldly ways.
A 'bahtsEta' is someone who is:
"artful in knowledge" — choosing to study
only the things appropriate for study — being
a person learned in those subjects and
observant — personal qualities that lie at the
trailhead of the path to wisdom. Such
knowledge allows one to be independent in
earning one's living and will be the key which
unlocks the door to worldly success.
B. The Nature of Knowledge
8.1 The Three Levels of Knowledge
If we want to identify the features of learning that will
give rise to wisdom we have to distinguish wisdom
from other sorts of knowledge. All sorts of knowledge
help to illuminate the mind. When we don't understand
something it is as if we are left in the dark about that
thing. When we understand something it is as if light
has been thrown on that matter. Knowledge in its most
basic form, like the ability to do arithmetic or knowing
where to catch the bus sometimes will feel as if it
creates some illumination in the mind but it is just a
feeling — because such an ability is restricted to the
higher sort of knowledge we call "wisdom". In all we
can differentiate three levels of knowledge:
I. Theoretical knowledge [sutamaya-paiiiiA] The most
basic sort of knowledge arises via the five senses, that is
through the things we see with our eyes, hear with our
ears, smell with our nose, taste with our tongue or feel
by our sense of touch. You could call this sort of
knowledge raw data. Touching fire tells us that it is hot.
A child might want to know what fire is like. Their
mother tells them not to touch it because it is hot and
will burn them. The child will not believe their mother
so easily. The mother might tell them not to touch it
twice, but on the third time she will have to give in to
the child's curiosity and let him touch the flame so that
the child will know for next time that heat goes together
with
EFTA00286576
brightness. This sort of knowledge also includes the
knowledge we receive by listening to information
and what you can remember from what you have
heard in lectures and read from textbooks. If you
have never had the chance to apply the knowledge
that you have learned then it may still be of limited
use;
I.
Hands-on Knowledge [cintamayapaiiiiA]: The second
sort of knowledge which is slightly more advanced is
hands-on knowledge, the knowledge that has been
the brightness is not yet continuous and is dim
like a glowworm. Such brightness is not yet
sufficient to identify defilements, but it is a good
start;
2. It allows us to transcend defilements: When
wisdom arises, it allows us to transcend defilements
previously active in the mind. Problems which used
to exist will be overcome once and for all. Evil in the
mind is uprooted. It allows us to probe deeper into
problems and cut off problems at their roots. It
reflected on, tested and applied. However, even if you a 'It/Mows us to overcome our own faults and
the world's best professor, your knowledge will not
weaknesses. It allows us to change our bad habits.
exceed this level. With this sort of knowledge you are
Such knowledge is able to overcome suffering and to
like someone stands on the water's edge and sees ripples change our own habits. It allows us to get to the root
on the surface of the water. From knowledge or
of problems. Such knowledge can actually kill
experience they would be able to assume that the ripples negativity in the mind once and for all. Such
are caused by fish under the surface of the water.
knowledge no longer comes via the five senses but
Whether the fish are large or small or whether there are will come instead directly via the mind that is still. It
shrimps or crabs or shellfish moving under the water, you is not knowledge that comes from thinking. It is
could probably notice from the size of the ripples. But
knowledge that arises in the still mind together with
because you cannot see the fish directly you are able only
to make an educated guess;
brightness. It is a sort of knowledge we sometimes
2.
Insight [bhAvanAmayapailtiA]: A third and higher sort call wisdom or insight. If we go back to the scenario
of knowledge is insight into deeper truths or more
with the man standing on the edge of the water,
challenging truths. However if we study meditation
where through conventional knowledge the man
further we will discover that even finding the solutions tocould do no better than make an educated guess, if
simple problems in this way is actually causing there to we were to use insight to assess the same situation, it
be illumination arising in the mind. The characteristics olwould be as if the water was clear and the man could
wisdom when it arises in the mind:
see the fish, the crabs, the shrimps or the shellfish
without having to think about it.
I. It will give rise to brightness in the mind. Wis-
dom is the light which will chase away the darkness
of ignorance. This is not just a metaphor for the
knowledge but when we train ourselves further in
meditation, we will see that brightness really is the
operant feature of wisdom. The illumination of the
more advanced sorts of knowledge is so bright that
is is like compressing the brightness of a hundred
suns into a single spot. It is by virtue of such
brightness that we can identify and uproot the
defilements usually hidden in the mind. For those
who are new to meditation,
The ability to harness the knowledge that arises from
the still mind is an ability for which you have to train in
meditation.
B.2 Contrast between the Learned and the Wise
There are several important differences between the
learned who know only the theory of how to do good
deeds (but may not practice it) and the wise who may
not know much but use everything they know to boost
their opportunity to do good deeds. Unfortunately,
knowledge in the hands of a fool (or even a learned
person) can be a dangerous thing. If your only
knowledge is academic knowledge, no matter how
clever you might be, there is always a
EFTA00286577
risk of making a mess of your life. For example, if you
have a knowledge of nuclear physics, you can use it for
peaceful applications as an energy source — on the
other hand you can use your knowledge to produce
atomic bombs and the resulting holocaust towards
human life. Thus ethical considerations need to go hand
in hand with our academic knowledge, like a guiding
light to give us clarity as to whether the application of
our knowledge is good or bad, appropriate or
inappropriate.
Those who are interested only in academic learning, no
matter how clever, rich or powerful they may be, can
never manage to make themselves endearing or worthy
of the respect of others and in the end they cannot make
a success out of their lives.
C/ Sense of Responsibility for own Human Dignity
In order for a student to protect their own sense of
human dignity, they must refrain from the Four De-
filements of Action:
I. taking the lives or being cruel to people or ani-
mals;
2. stealing;
3. committing adultery or have sexual intercourse
outside marriage;
4. telling lies.
Also concerning a person's responsibility to their own
sense of human dignity, a person should:
C.2 Sense of Responsibility for others' Human Dignity
Bias gives us negative attitudes which may reduce our
chances of success in study. If we are able to overcome
these items of unfairness in the mind from the outset
then the mind will be a much more fertile receptacle for
knowledge:
I. Learning based on Desire [chandAgati]: Desire
doesn't need to be so strong that you are a Casanova.
Such a person would have no chance of being a good
student anyway. However, to a lesser degree even
someone who is excessively fussy about what they do
and what they wear would be unlikely to succeed in
their studies. Those who study simply because they
would like to become famous will find it hard to
succeed in study. If you sec possessions as an end in
themselves then we will have no incentive to study.
2. Learning based on Hatred [dosAgati]: If you want
to study successfully then you mustn't be someone who
loses their temper easily. You must be able to accept
criticism without being scared of appearing foolish.
Some people are angry only for an instant and then they
recover quickly. Others are angry and it takes them a
long time to get over it. They find it hard to forgive.
Even later on, although they can't remember why they
were angry with someone, they still feel angry with that
person. They forget their respect for others. They think
that they are superior to everyone else. Thus they can
never learn anything from anyone else. By meditating,
•
avoid sentimentality about learning: those who awch people can train themselves to be less impatient. If
not strong-minded in their pursuit of learning will not manakey also keep a baseline of morality such as avoiding
to succeed in becoming learned;
killing animals and insulting then they will find it much
•
avoid obsession with appearances: if you want toett§ier to acquire wisdom.
to be a learned person in the future — you should model
yourself on the stereotype of academics or monastics who
emphasise only two things about their dress — modesty and
cleanliness.
3. Learning based on Ignorance [mohAgati]: If you
•
avoid childishness: those who play around, neverare still acting on your own ignorance instead of giving
take responsibility for anything and never taking anything things careful consideration before you do them, then
seriously, will never succeed in becoming learned.
you will find it hard acquire new knowledge. If your
old ways of looking at the world are faulty then you
need to let go of them before you can expect to acquire
new ones.
4. Learning based on Fear [bhayAgati]: Some people
lack confidence in themselves and their own
EFTA00286578
knowledge. They are always afraid of the criticism
of others. If you are afraid of taking decisions
yourself, then you will be destined to always be led
by other people instead of standing on your own
feet. You will have no creative or original thinking
of your own. If even you don't trust your own
knowledge then how can you expect to make anyone
else confident.
C.3 Sense of Responsibility for Economic Fairness
In order for a student to protect society's sense of
human dignity, they must refrain from the Six Roads to
Ruin:
I. Drinking alcohol;
2. Roaming the streets at unseemly hours;
3. Frequenting shows;
4. Gambling;
5. Association with bad company;
6. Laziness to work fora living.
Furthermore a person who is obsessed with personal
financial gain will find it hard to make progress in their
studies. A person should not "worship money". Those
who see that material rewards are more valuable than
wisdom will never go very far in acquiring wisdom. We
don't overlook the importance of wealth — but on the
way that it is best to apply one's wealth — that will be
the subject of Blessing Fifteen.
D.I Coming into contact with someone knowledgeable
One of the hardest things is to find a teacher who will
give the necessary encouragement to bring one's
studies to fruition. The Buddha taught in the
SilgalovAda Sutta that successful studies are es-
tablished on the base of reciprocal duties that a student
practices towards his teacher and that a teacher
practises towards their student (duties collectively
referred to as duties to the Southern Quarter). If a
student finds a teacher that they think they can learn
something from, they should start to learn from them.
The teacher should practice the following five duties
towards their pupil, by making sure:
I. the student is well trained;
2. that the student is taught in such a way that he
understands and remembers well what he has learned;
3. that the student is thoroughly instructed in the lore of
every art without holding knowledge back;
4. to give praise to the student which raises his esteem
amongst his peers;
5. that the student's security and safety in every quarter
(i.e. towards parents, wife, children, employees, friends
and spiritual mentors) is ensured, while pointing out the
loopholes and weaknesses present in any body of
knowledge.
Meanwhile the student should minister to his teacher
by:
I. rising to receive them;
2. by serving them (in things which facilitate the
teacher's convenience)
3. by obedience to the teachings or an eagerness to
learn;
4. by personal service
5. by attentively and respectfully learning the arts and
sciences
If a student fails to fulfil their duties but the teacher does
their part, the student is unworthy of the teacher — and it
will be no surprise if the student can never become "skilled
in knowledge" — catastrophe will await the student.
If the teacher fails to fulfil their duties but the pupil
does their part, then the teacher is unworthy of the
student — and perhaps the student should look
elsewhere for a better teacher
— and catastrophe awaits the teacher.
If neither the student nor the teacher fulfil their duties,
catastrophe will await both student and teacher and their
failing will have negative consequences for society at
large.
However, if both student and teacher fulfil their duties
to one another, both parties will have a bright future and
their behaviour will have positive consequences for
society at large.
EFTA00286579
D.2 Finding the opportunity to hear what they teach
If you are still the sort of person who skips lectures and
copies the notes later, you are unlikely ever to make a
success of your career as a student. This applies both to
the contact with your teacher and reading from the
textbooks. It means questioning in order to further your
knowledge.Whatever knowledge you learn, try to divide
it up into these four aspects and study all four. Only
then can you say that you have mastered that
knowledge. Such an assessment of your own knowledge
will prevent you from slipping into the premature
overestimation of the amount you know and give you
the encouragement to keep listening to people of knowl-
edge.
1. Knowledge in Depth: You need to make sure that
you understand deeply what you have learned. You
need to know the roots and origins of everything you
study (its past). If you are a doctor and you see a patient
ill with certain symptoms by looking at their face you
can tell immediately about the prognosis of their illness
right from ten or twenty years ago. Don't go believing
things simply because they are traditional or customary
without understanding the reasons for such belief.
2. Knowledge in Breadth: You need to have a broad
knowledge (the present) not only of your own narrow
specialism but also about all the things that concern
your everyday life. Even if you study the arts, you still
need to know the elements of electricity because you
use electricity in your everyday life from the time you
get up in the morning to the time you go to bed. If you
have studied science, you still need to know about the
arts othenvise you will not understand how to
communicate emotions, feelings and ideas from one
person to another in different forms whether it may be
written or visual. If you don't study then you can be the
best engineer in the world but if you have no gift for
communicating with people you will just be digging
holes for the rest of your life.
3. Thorough Knowledge: Not only will you know
your own narrow subject but you will know the
connections which it has with other issues as if you
know the influences of that knowledge all the way
from the mainstream up to the edges.
4. Long-sighted Knowledge: You need to have a
long-sighted knowledge. You need to know how things
will turn out in the future. You need to know how one
thing leads to another.
D.3 Listening attentively
You need to listen to remember — not just sit in the
lecture picking your fingernails and chatting to your
friends, with no idea what the lecture was about at the
end;
D.4 Memorizing knowledge learned [vAcAsa-paricitta]
If you make no effort to memorize what you have
learned, you will never become a person 'who has
heard much' (A.v.26). Memorization is an implicit part
of the duty of a monk and it is expectedof monks by the
lay congregation. If the knowledge stays in the books, it
is like having money, but having lent it all to someone
else. If you want it back instantly, even though it is
yours you cannot get it back instantly. Even though you
know which textbook you can find a certain piece of
knowledge in, you will go reaching for the book one
day and find that worms have eaten just the page you
needed.
D.5 Reflecting on knowledge memorized [manasA-
nupekkhitA] You have to digest new knowledge in
your mind and look for causes and effects Meditating is
the mostefficient way of 'digesting' new knowledge.
D.6 Applying knowledge for one's own benefit
(see Blessing Eight)
D.7 Applying knowledge for the benefit of oneself and
others
(See Blessing Eight)
Here are some practical suggestions for budding
scholars:
I. Choose only appropriate subjects to study which will
not have negative implications for the hu
EFTA00286580
man dignity of yourself, others or society at large;
2. Dedicate yourself— studying your chosen subject
to the utmost of your ability;
3. Always be enthusiastic to learn new things;
4. Study spiritual knowledge hand-in-hand with worldly
knowledge;
5. Remember what you have learned so that it is always
at your immediate disposal
F.! Metaphor: Lamp lighting the path for a long
journey ahead
Just as illumination is necessary to light the path ahead
on a long journey, artfulness in knowledge is the
pioneering virtue leading to prosperity in life.
F.1 Ex. Buddha advises a brahmin to pay respect to
Ananda (1196)
There was once a brahmin who sought the advice of the
Buddha. He said that it was obvious how one could pay
respect to the Buddha and the Salgha, because they
were already a sort of personality. However, the
Brahmin didn't know how to pay respect to the
Dhamma which seemed more abstract.The Buddha
replied that if you want to pay respect to the Dhamma,
you should pay respect to those who are learned in the
Dhamma. The Brahmin asked around to find which of
the monks was the most learned and everyone agreed
that/nanda was the most learned because more than any
other monk, he had heard the teachings of the Lord
Buddha. Thus the Brahmin went to pay respect to
/panda above the other monks, many of whom had more
advanced spiritual attainments.
F.3 Ex. MahAsutasoma JAtaka (1537)
There was a certain Buddha who while pursuing
Perfections as the bodhisattva, was born as a king
called MahAsutasoma. The king was so keen to learn
new teachings of the Dhamma that he would invite
anyone who had knowledge of the Dhamma to come
and teach him in the palace. On one occasion,
MahAsutasoma was captured by an ogre. The ogre was
going to put him to death. On just the day the ogre was
going to collect him, it was also the
day when he had made an appointment with a
knowledgable Brahmin Nanda to teach some teachings
left over from the Kassapa Buddha. In that day and age,
there were no living teachings to be followed any more.
There were no monks left any more. Later even if the
king offered the prize of a heap of gold as tall as the
person to give the teaching, there would still be no-one
who had any teaching to give the king. Even if the king
offered the prize of a heap of diamonds as tall as an
elephant, still nobody could be found to give a teaching
to the teacher. However, in the time of king
MahAsutasoma, the decay of Buddhism was not so
much that there were no teachings left any more. The
day when the king was to be captured, someone had
accepted an invitation to come and give a teaching in the
palace. On that day, out of respect for the Dhamma, the
king had first gone to freshen up and change into a new
set of clothes in preparation for hearing the Dhamma. It
was as he was washing that he was captured. The king
made a deal with the ogre that it could do with him as it
liked, but it should first let him listen to the teaching of
the Dhamma, because he had already made an
appointment with the teacher who was coming. The
king promised the ogre that after hearing the teaching he
would allow it to take him away for sacrifice. Even
though the people of that time didn't know about the
Precepts, they still knew about the importance of
truthfulness. The king was allowed to return to the
palace where the Brahmin was waiting. The Brahmin
didn't even know how to explain the Dhamma, all he
could do was to read out a piece of the scriptures. The
Brahmin also had to wash himself before giving the
teaching. He rinsed his hands with perfume before
picking up the scriptures. He bowed three times to the
scriptures and only then did he open up the scriptures in
the most careful possible way. The subject matter of the
scriptures were the words of a previous Buddha. The
Brahmin could read the words and translate them, but he
didn't know the meaning:
Associating with the noble ones just once,
One can be protected by that contact for
the rest of one's life.
EFTA00286581
However, associating with fools even many
times, Will fail to protect you for the rest of
your life. If you associate with the noble
ones, You should associate with them closely,
Because anyone who can learn the virtues of
a noble one, Will know only prosperity and
never know decay.
Even a royal chariot that is beautifully
decorated, Must eventually deteriorate and
decay, In the same way the body that we
possess Must eventually decay and die.
However, the Virtue of the Noble Ones
Never goes out of date and never decays. It is
only the Noble Ones together Who can know
each others' minds.
The earth and sky are far apart. The two
sides of the ocean are far apart. But they
are not so far apart, As the behaviour of the
nobles and that of fools.
Before putting the scriptures away, the brahmin bowed to
them again. Hearing just these teachings, the king was so
moved that he cried tears of joy. The king asked the
brahmin, "Usually when you read this scripture to other
kings, how much do they give you?'
The brahmin replied, "They give me a hundred for each
verse."
"These verses are not a 'hundred a verse' but are a
'thousand a verse"' said the king, and presented the
brahmin with five thousand.
The king remembered the appointment he had made
with the ogre and thought to himself, "If I were to break
my promise, it would only make my mind dull and
guilty and I would certainly have an unfortunate
afterlife destination — better that I go to my death with
that ogre while my mind is still radiant from having
heard the Dhamma." The
king gave himself up to the ogre. The ogre was sur-
prised that the king didn't show any sign of fearing
death. It asked the king why he had no fear of death.
When the king told them the Dhamma he had learned,
the ogre was so impressed that it asked to take refuge in
the king as its teacher and had no more thought about
sacrificing him.
F.4 Er. Tuccha-PoEhila (The Blank Scripture
Monk)(DhAiii4l7-21)
In the time of the Buddha there was an elder monk who
was so learned in the Dhamma teachings that he had many
disciples of his own. Many of his disciples had become
arahants as the result of what he had taught — but he,
himself, had not achieved anything. He had heard a lot of
teachings but he had never showed any interest in
practising for himself all the theory thathe had taught. All
he had was knowledge — he had no attainments.
Out of compassion,the Buddha wanted the elder monk to
realize that he must practice for himself, so he always called
the elder by the name 'Blank Scripture'. If the elder came to
see the Buddha, the only thing the Buddha would say to him
was "'Blank Scripture'— so you're here again?" For other
disciples the Buddha would ask questions or give
encouragement, but instead of giving encouragement to this
elder for having so many students he just said 'Blank
scripture'. Apart from this he would ignore the elder
completely until everyone else was taking their leave. Again,
the only thing the Buddha would say to him was "'Blank
Scripture' — so it's time for you to go?"
One day, the elder saw through his feeling of being
slighted bythe Buddha and thought to himself, "What
the Buddha says is really true — I really am a `blank
scripture' — because I know all the scriptures by heart,
but I have never used any of it in practice for my own
benefit." He thought to himself,"I have spent all my life
teaching others, but I have never taught anything to the
stubbornest person in the world — myself."
(Sometimes, even though you know what is good and
what is bad, you still don't make any effort to change
your behaviour. When the alarm clock rings in the
morning, instead of getting up, you switch it
EFTA00286582
off and go back to sleep. This is the reason why it is
necessary to teach yourself regularly).
Thus the blank scripture elder went to the most senior arahant
he knew and asked for his help in teaching the practice of
Buddhism. The arahant, knew what was in the mind the elder
and knew if he made life too easy for him, he would never
give up the arrogance he needed to shed in order to learn
anything. Thus the arahant did not agree to teach him, but sent
him to a more junior arahant saying, "That monk is still
young and healthy — he will have the strength to teach you
what you want to know."
The 'blank scripture' elder went to the younger arahant,
but the younger arahant knew the character of the elder
again. He knew with his seniority, the elder would not
pay much attention to anything taught to him by
someone half his age. Thus the young arahant sent the
elder to study with a novice who was an arahant. The
elder was tempted to give up his search for knowledge
because of the humiliation of having to be taught by a
young novice! However, the warning of the Buddha
still rang in his ear and he gritted his teeth and went to
see the novice.
The novice knew the arrogant character of the elder so
he told him that to get a good result from the teaching,
the elder must be up to his neck in river water to get
any benefit. The elder thought, "I am really at my last
resort — if I don't do as this
novice tells me, I will maybe never have the chance to
learn any more."When the elder was up to his waist in
water, he had completely given up his dignity and
hence his arrogance. The novice said, "Up to your waist
is enough!"
The novice taught, "There is a termite mound with six
entrances. A water monitor is inside the termite mound. The
way to catch the water monitor is to block five entrances and
to put your hand through the sixth and you will be able to
catch the water monitor as you wish." The novice didn't need
to say any more. Because the elder was an experienced teacher
he immediately knew that the water monitor in the teaching is
the mind itself which is constantly thinking of things that are
of no benefit, losing its energy via the six sense doors. If we
want to train the mind we have to control the five outer senses
(eyes, ears, nose, tongue and body) and purify the sixth sense
which is the object of the mind. As soon as the elder
understood, he immediately trained himself in sensual restraint
and purification of the mind.
By the end of the novice's teaching, the elder was an
arahant, even standing there up to his waist in water.
Because the elder had been artful in knowledge for so
long, to become artful in practice was no difficulty. All
he needed was to have a little reminder to make him
think a little. Thus we can see that to be artful in
knowledge is essential for one's personal development.
EFTA00286583
Blessing Eight:
Artfulness in
Application
A. INTRODUCTION
Since Blessing Seven, we have already discovered the
value of being artful in knowledge — but it is not good
enough — it is also necessary to be artful in the
application of what we know — the subject of this
Blessing.
A.l People confuse knowledge with ability
Many people confuse knowledge with ability. Artfulness
in the application of knowledge means that if you have
learned an occupational subject, if you have learned all the
necessary theory, you have to transform that theory into
practice allowing you to earn your living. If you have
learned Dhamma theory, you have to transform that
knowledge into Dhamma practice.
It is like someone who reads a manual of swimming
who can memorize every page of the manual. He
knows how many types of swimming styles exist and
what all the differences are. When he has read the book,
he puts it at the side of the swimming pool and jumps in
— sinking without a trace!
A.2 Why no-one wants fresh graduates
This is one reason why many graduates are unemployed
— they have only knowledge from examinations or
from copying their friends. They have no practical
knowledge. They expect to get a prestigious job in
keeping with their prestigious degree and look down on
almost every type of work. When
they have only academic knowledge, no practical
knowledge and they expect to choose where they want
to work, who can they expect to want to take them on?
If you don't want to be an unemployed graduate, you
should take on any work you can find, to get the
practical experience ever since you have not yet
graduated. If you can transform your academic
knowledge into practical skills even before you
graduate, you will make an very attractive prospect for
employers. There will be employers asking after you
even before you graduate.
Some people get themselves a prestigious degree in
accounting. They take a job as a lecturer in university
and because they can teach accounting in a way that
allows their students to become successful accountants,
they think that they are also a capable accountant. The
lecturer sees that his students are richer than he is, so he
gives up his job to start a business himself. Before
long, his business is bankrupt and he has to go back to
teaching! Only then would such a person find out the
reality that knowledge and application of knowledge
are completely different attributes.
B. DEFINITIONS
B.1 Definition: Artfulness in Application
The Pali word `sippaO', meaning `one endowed with
artistry' means someone who is skilled in application of
their knowledge. The `bahEsEtal of Blessing Seven is
one who is skilled in knowledge,
EFTA00286584
but the person who has mastered this Eighth Blessing is
one who can apply that knowledge fruitfully too.
B.2 Sir Components of Artful Application
Not all performances or displays of application of
knowledge qualify as 'artfulness in application'. You
can learn skills, but it doesn't guarantee that using the
skill will bring you merit — therefore, before
committing yourself to a skill you want to learn, you
have to consider the merits of it first, for the harmony
of society: If you are a sculptor, then why not use your
skill to sculpt Buddha images that can bring inspiration
to others? If you can draw then why not draw the sort of
pictures that will inspire others to do good deeds? Even
little skills like being able to make toys for one's
children can help to stop wastage of family income on
imported dolls and cartoon characters — as a guideline,
bear in mind the following six qualities of applied work
that demonstrates artistry:
I. Must be refined
2. Adds to the value of the raw materials
3. Product of the work leads to creative thinking, not
aggressive or destructive thinking: A motor engineer
should use his skill to build engines to help people in
their everyday lives rather than to build weapons to
wage war.
4. Product of the work doesn't lead to sensual ob-
session: Don't go studying the sort of arts that will stir
up the passion of others — like cabaret dancing or
strip-tease.
5. Product of the work doesn't lead to ilrwill or
vengefulness
6. Product of the work doesn't lead to aggression:
Don't engage in arts that will cause people to seek
vengeance such as inventing war slogans.
B.3 Three Categories of Artful Application
Don't think that only artistic applications you can 'see
and touch' qualify for fulfilment of the Eighth Blessing.
Such skilfulness can be applied to body, speech and
mind:
I. Artistic Application in Body: This applies to various
sorts of specialism or applied expertise,
whether it be plumbing, mechanics, painting, design,
sculpture, photography, printing or other vocational
skills such as gardener, farmer, author or nurse —
and further than that, having the manners to walk,
stand, sit and lie down politely, dressing
appropriately, being hospitable, expressing respect
and behaving in a `cultivated' way;
2. Artistic Application in Speech: This applies to
communication skills, knowing what to say and how to
say it in a way to inspire the hearer towards virtue
(more in Blessing Ten)
3. Artistic Application in Mind: This applies to
skillfulness in thinking, having one's wits about one
and creative thinking.
In a nutshell, Artfulness in Application is artfulness in
body, speech and mind.
CI Transforming Knowledge into Skills
If you want to transform your academic knowledge
into applied ability, you have to possess the following
qualities (PatthanA Sutta A.iii.l 54):
I. Believe in what you do [saddha]: You have to
believe that you what you are doing is really beneficial
and virtuous. You should be enthusiastic about doing it
and have the confidence that you can make a success
out of it. Some doctors graduate in medical science, but
have no confidence in their ability to heal people. Some
are more confident in their own ability to construct
buildings. In the end, they become building contractors!
They can achieve more success that way than they ever
could by being a doctor! You need to have to believe in
what you are doing if you are to be able to dedicate
yourself to it.
2. Safeguard your health: Don't be the sort of person
who bursts into coughs and sneezes when exposed to
the merest cold draught. If you let your efforts destroy
your health, it will be hard for you to succeed in
learning a trade. A practical way to safeguard your
health from all the possible risks is very simple — keep
the Five Precepts strictly. If you neglect your health and
go looking for things to destroy yourself by doing
EFTA00286585
unhealthy things, you will find it hard ever to
achieve success in learning a trade.
3. You must avoid arrogance and boastfulness: Those
who spend all day speaking about what they will do,
but never getting round to doing it, will never manage
to master a trade. No-one wants to accept someone who
is boastful as an apprentice. The only skill which
boastful people manage to develop is the ability to find
fault with other people in order to let other people know
how wonderful they are themselves. By pushing others
down they are able to hoist themselves up in the
estimation of others. The habit of a boastful person is to
take a very minor virtue or ability and magnify it
beyond all proportion.
4. You must avoid laziness: If you have only knowl-
edge but you are too lazy to do anything with it, then
you will be no more than knowledgeable for the rest of
your life.
5. Cultivate wisdom: Wisdom is cultivated by being
observant and reflecting on new skills and techniques.
C2 Instilling yourself with "Artfulness in Application"
You cannot acquire wisdom just by eating and sleeping.
You have to be active in your search for wisdom
according to the following steps:
I. Be observant of yourself and the things around
you: It is all very well to say 'be observant' but in fact,
it is important to know what to observe! In a nutshell,
our powers of observation should always attempt to
seek out the good and useful characteristics of the
things we observe.You have to start by observing
yourself first — because to observe yourself is
theoretically the simplest. You should start by noticing
aspects of your lifestyle, (for example our habits of
eating or sleeping) to try to define what is appropriate
or inappropriate and where the point of equilibrium lies
for various factors. If you eat too much it will make
you sleepy. If you eat too little, your stomach will
rumble at night. You have to notice what happens to us
if we go to bed late. You have to notice what happens
to you if you get up late. What is better for you — to go
to bed at ten at night
and wake up at dawn, or to go to bed at midnight
and to wake up at seven in the morning? Once you
know how to be observant of yourself, you can
gradually extend your observation to the things
around you. We notice our clothes. How our clothes
get dirty at the collar or around the cuffs. Notice
what sort of clothes are suitable for what sort of
situation. We gradually extend ow mindfulness to
the things more distant from us — noticing how to
speak to people in an appropriate way, how to speak
to people to inspire them instead of making them
lazy. Notice the characteristics of the things around
you. If you train yourself to be observant even of
yourself, the skill will soon be developed and
wisdom will follow.
2. Train yourself to do anything better than best: Never
look down on any work that conies your way. Never think
any task you do is unimportant. Even simple things like your
handwriting should be done with care. From the time when a
child is young, they should be trained to write neatly
whatever they do so that 'being careful' about whatever work
they are to do in the future will be ingrained from the earliest
age. Some people write with such messy handwriting that
others can only barely decipher what has been written.
Someone who writes like that since their youth until
adulthood will soon get themselves in the habit of doing
everything in a shoddy way
— never achieving anything better than 'passable'
quality. If you do everything to the best of your
ability, skills and abilities will soon come your way
without you even having to spend time looking for
them. Even if you don't study the specific qualities
of a particular art, if you are always observant of
quality, and do things cleanly and in a detailed way,
even though you cannot produce artwork for
yourself, you will be able to tell quality in the work
of others. Once you have trained your mind to be
refined and to notice details, even the way you speak
will start to be of higher quality — more based on
reason and more confident (because your train of
thought will be more systematic).
EFTA00286586
3. Be refined in all you do: Some might accuse you of
`nit-picking' but if you insist on high quality in your
work, even in the details, before long, you will start to
pick up artfulness in application.
4 Always look for better ways to do the same thing:
Sometimes you can already do a task, but if you always
look for quicker, more efficient, more cost-effective
ways of doing the same thing, it will force you always
to improve on your skills, never sitting on your laurels.
5. Apprentice yourself to a craftsman: Seek out
craftsmen in the field which you want to master and
become apprentice to them. Be respectful and helpful to
him so that he will have the compassion to push you
further in the direction of craftsmanship.
6. Meditate regularly: The art of training our capa-
bilities of action and speech is rooted in ow capability
to train the mind. Systematic thinking and observation
can only be developed when the mind is well-trained.
Training the mind through meditation will make the
acquisition of other capabilities easy, because to be able
to meditate is the ultimate skill — because it deals with
refinement at its root.
C.3 Applying knowledge for your own benefit and the
benefit of others
In continuation of the "Learning Process already described
in Blessing Seven", Blessing Eight concerns the last two
steps of the knowledge acquisition process which involve
the application of that knowledge for the good of ourselves
and others.
Some people use their knowledge and skills only for
their own selfish benefits. Sometimes they are afraid
that if they teach all they know to anyone else then they
will be giving away their trade secrets or that that other
person may overtake them and make more progress
than they have done.
The attitude which is the most healthy for rounding off
a body of knowledge that you have learned is to use
your knowledge both for your own benefit and the
benefit of others too. Like the example of the College
of Surgery with the policy "See One
Do One - Teach One" where capable students were not
only those who could witness and perform surgery —
they were also able to teach surgery to others too! In
that way, all your mastery of the knowledge will not be
limited to overcoming your own shortcomings — the
application of knowledge can also be used to overcome
the shortcomings of others.
C.4 How not to instil yourself with "Artfulness in
Application"
If you want to learn artfulness in application quickly,
you have to make sure that you are not the sort of
person who can do nothing better than find fault with
the work of others — unless you are training yourself to
be a professional critic! If you have done nothing but
criticise others, when it comes to your turn to show off
your craftsmanship, you will not have the confidence to
let others see what you have made or done — for fear
they will criticize you in the same way as you have
done them. In such a case, you will end up as someone
who never achieves anything.
D.I Proverb: He who knows but a single skill. . .
He who knows but a single skill can eke out his
livelihood with ease.
D.2 Metaphor: Just as twigs...
If you plant a mango tree, the benefit you get from it
depends entirely on the amount of fruit. Even though
the tree might grow a trunk, branches and leaves —
these are no more than precursors for any benefit which
may come later. In the same way, even though a person
may be learned, this knowledge is no more than a
precursor for the benefit that can accrue if the
knowledge is applied.
D.3 Er. Swimology (traditional)
Once a young professor was making a sea voyage. He
was a highly educated man with a long tail of letters
after his name, but he had little experience of life. In the
crew of the ship on which he was traveling was an
illiterate old sailor. Every evening the sailor would visit
the cabin of the young pro
EFTA00286587
lessor to listen to him hold forth on many different
subjects. He was very impressed with the learning of
the young man.
One evening as the sailor was about to leave the cabin
after several hours of conversation, the professor
asked,"Old man, have you studied geology?"
"What is that,sir?"
"The science of the earth."
"No sir, I have never been to any school or college. I
have never studied anything."
"Old man, you have wasted a quarter of your life."
With a long face the old sailor went away. "If such a
learned person says so, certainly it must be true," he
thought. "I have wasted a quarter of my life."
Next evening again, as the sailor was about to leave the
cabin, the professor asked him, "Old man, have you
studied oceanography?"
"What is that, sir?'
"The science of the sea."
"No, sir, I have never studied anything."
"Old man, you have wasted half your life."
With a still longer face the sailor went away: "I have
wasted half my life; this learned man says so."
Next evening again as the sailor was about to leave the
cabin, "Old man, have you studied meteorology?"
"What is that, sir? I have never heard of it."
"The science of the wind, the rain, the weather."
"No sir. As I told you, I have never been to any school.
I have never studied anything."
"You have not studied the science of the earth on which
you live; you have not studied the science of the sea on
which you earn your livelihood; you have not studied the
science of the weather which you encounter every day?
Old man, you have wasted three-quarters of your life."
The old sailor was very unhappy: "This learned man
says that I have wasted three-quarters of my life!
Certainly I must have wasted three-quarters of my life.
The next day it was the turn of the old sailor. He came
running to the cabin of the young man and cried,
"Professor! Have you studied swimology?"
"Swimology? What do you mean?"
"Can you swim, sir?"
"No, I don't know how to swim."
"Professor! You have wasted the whole of your life! The
ship has struck a rock and is sinking. Those who can swim
may reach the nearby shore, but those who cannot swim
will drown. I am sorry, professor sir, you have surely lost
your life.-
You may study all the "-ologies" of the world, but if
you don't learn swimology, all your studies are useless.
You may read and write books on swimming, you may
debate on its subtle theoretical aspects, but how will
that help if you refuse to enter the water yourself? You
must learn how to swim.
D.4 1x SAlittaka JAtaka(1.107)
In ancient times, there was a child with polio. His legs
were so weak that he couldn't walk anywhere unaided.
He had to stay wherever his friends put him. He
couldn't even get up. Although his body was deformed,
his intelligence was bright. He didn't look down on any
subject. The child would practice flicking sand until he
could flick sand a long distance very precisely. The boy
used his skills to earn favours from others. The boy
could flick sand so accurately that he could shoot holes
in the leaves of trees above. Not only holes — but he
could shoot holes in the shapes of anything he wanted
— whether they be the shape of rabbits or tigers or
deer. The boy would shoot holes in leaves to the order
of the other children in return for sweets. The boy with
polio had never studied in school, but through his skill,
he had more sweets to eat than the other children every
day.
One day the boy was flicking sand on the sand heap for
the other children when the king passed by. All the
other children ran away, and the boy with polio was left
alone. The king came to rest in the shade of the tree by
the sandheap and when he looked up, he was surprised
to see that almost every leaf of the tree had been
perforated in the shape of different animals. The king
asked how the tree had come to be that way, and found
out that it was due to the skills of the boy with polio.
The king thought, "the skills of such a boy should not
be wasted at the sandpit." The king happened to have a
something on his mind — every time he had a meeting
EFTA00286588
of his counsellors, there was a particular counsellor
who would interrupt and dominate the discussion
regularly wasting the time of everyone in the meeting.
The king asked the boy, "if someone were to open their
mouth, would you be able to shoot goat dung into their
mouth in the same way you shoot sand through
leaves?"
The boy said, "It would be a piece of cake." The king
had the boy taken into the palace. Those with all health
and strength never got the chance to go to the palace,
but this poor crippled boy did. Every time there was a
meeting, the boy was put behind a curtain in the room.
Every time the counsellor in question opened his mouth
to speak, the boy flicked goat dung into his mouth. The
boy was so fast, that the counsellor didn't even know
where the taste in his mouth had come from. The
counsellor would want to speak but change his mind as
a result every
time, because he would have to swallow what was in
his mouth. One day, the counsellor had opened his
mouth so many times that the boy had used up a whole
litre of goat dung. The king felt sony for the counsellor
and was afraid he would get dysentery. He ordered the
counsellor to go and wash his mouth out immediately
and told him to reduce the amount he said or else in
future he would get two litres of goat dung in his
mouth! On future occasions, the counsellor had to
consider carefully before saying anything in case he fell
prey to flying goat dung. As the result of having more
effective meetings, the economics of the kingdom
improved considerably. The king rewarded the crippled
boy by allocated all the money earned in taxes from a
certain province to him as pin-money. The cripple
became a rich man as the result of a single skill —
because he put his mind to perfecting his skill.
EFTA00286589
Blessing Nine:
Artfulness in
Usage
A. INTRODUCTION
A.I Place of Blessing Nine in the order of things
The Seventh Blessing concerned artfulness in knowledge.
We should be enthusiastic about finding any new
knowledge either in spiritual or worldly ways as long as it
doesn't have any negative implications for the human
dignity of ourselves, others or society in general. Once you
can avail yourself of such knowledge, then it is a blessing
in itself.
The Eighth Blessing concerned artfulness in the
application of knowledge or "artfulness in learning skills".
We should be enthusiastic about learning any new skills
either in spiritual or worldly ways as long as they don't
have any negative implications for the human dignity of
ourselves, others or society in general. Once you can avail
yourself of such skills, then it is also a blessing in itself.
Already mooted in the previous two Blessings has been
the difficulty of knowing whether the knowledge or
skill we are learning has any negative implications for
the human dignity of ourselves, others or society in
general. The purpose of the Ninth Blessing is to give us
the guidelines we need — to allow us to judge our own
behaviour in action and word, so that the way we use
our intellectual resources and craftsmanship bring no
detriment to society around us or to our spiritual
fuitherment.
A.2 Objectives of studying `Artfulness in Usage'
In our consideration of the value of artfulness in usage
towards human dignity, we must always consider three
levels of description: our own personal human dignity,
the human dignity of others and the dignity of the
whole economic system in society. Being disciplined or
being "artful in usage" has benefits on three levels:
I. Personal Level: Being disciplined protects and
furthers one's own human dignity by protecting our
health from self-induced illness, reducing possible
obstacles in our spiritual vocation (especially those
arising from unintentional blunders with the
"defilements of action" [kammakilesa] and allowing us
to develop our level of virtue from mere "discipline"
[vinaya] to "selfdiscipline" [sEla] which is the
foundation for the subsequent development of meditation
[samAdhi] and wisdom [patiiiA]. It is said that being
disciplined is the one major difference between humans
and savages — thus by preserving ow level of discipline
we protect ourselves from decline into savagery;
Z Interpersonal Level: Being disciplined protects and
furthers others' human dignity by stopping people
taking advantage of each other.
3. Social Level: Being disciplined protects and furthers
the humanity of the fair economics in our society by
promoting compliance with the law and general
harmony for society.
EFTA00286590
Of course it is an advantage for the reader to know
about artfulness in usage (or more briefly "discipline")
and how to acquire it — but it is not until you become a
disciplined person that you will really start to gain
benefit from this Blessing.
A.3 Knowing where to draw the line
From person to person the intellectual resources and the
level of craftsmanship may not be the same — however,
the more the knowledge and skills a person has, the more
potential damage they can do to themselves, others and
society if they have no ethical discretion about how to use
that knowledge and skill. Thus it is vitally important that
everyone has -virtue" to go hand-in-hand with their
knowledge
— specifically the virtue to know the negative im-
plications of any deeds they may do or words they may
say. In society in general, we tend tothink that if what
we do or say is not illegal then it is acceptable to our
human dignity — however, the Law is really only a
very loose guideline for what should or should not be
done in society. To give a firm example, if a person can
perpetrate a murder, but has no witnesses, he cannot be
prosecuted in a court of law. Furthermore, the Law
from country to country is different — does this mean
that the ethics can also be localized? In some countries,
the Law might even be undemocratic — so the Law
alone doesn't give us sufficient guidelines for the
preservation of human dignity at any of the levels of
description. More detailed guidelines were provided by
the Buddha in the form of a checklist of four items to be
considered in order from the first to the last:
1. The Five Precepts: Does the action or speech con-
tradict break the Five Precepts I. killing; 2. stealing; 3.
adultery; 4. telling lies, and; 5. drinking alcohol (see
below) — i.e. the baseline of humane behaviour? This
form of discipline is spiritual discipline, concerning our
quality of mind and the quality of mind of those who
share society with us. We find that these Five Precepts
are at the heart of codes of discipline of many different
religions,
whether
it
be
the
Christian
Ten
Commandments, Islamic law, the 16 rules of Hindu
conduct.
2. The Five Virtues: Does the action or speech con-
tradict the Five Virtues [palicadhamma] of I. com-
passion; 2. right-livelihood; 3. sexual-restraint;
4. truthfulness, and; 5. awareness? — see Blessing
Sixteen. This form of discipline is spiritual
discipline, concerning our quality of mind and the
quality of mind of those who share society with us.
3. Local Law: Does the action or speech contradict the
local law? This form of discipline is worldly or
material discipline, concerning our quality of life and
the quality of life of those who share society with us.
4. Local Custom: Does the action or speech contradict
the local custom? This form of discipline is worldly or
material discipline and concerns social harmony and
solidarity.
Thus if an action goes against the Five Precepts, even if
it doesn't break the Law, it should not be done. Also,
even if it doesn't break the law notto do something, but
omitting to do something goes against the local custom,
perhaps this is a good reason to comply, at least for
harmony on the local level (but of course, it should not
break the Five Precepts).
B. DEFINITIONS
B.1 Definition: Artfulness in Usage
The root of the Pali word for `artfulness in usage' or
'discipline' is 'vinaya' comes from two stems `vi' and
'ney'. `My' means something that leads you. 'Vi' can
mean any of three things: 'good', `revealed' or
'different'. Thus in compound the definition of the
word `vinaya' means `leads you to good' or 'leads you
to brightness' or `leads you to something different'.
Leading one to goodness, means that it takes you away
from evil. Leading one to revelation means that it
allows us to see a person as they really are. Leading one
to be different means that it raises one above people in
general.
The actual meaning of the word is `rulesor regulations
to restrain ourselves in body and word to avoid causing
suffering to ourselves or others'. Notice that vinaya'
doesn't restrain the mind directly, but in effect, it has a
positive effect on the mind too because bodily action
and speech originate in the
EFTA00286591
mind. When we can avoid causing suffering to our-
selves or others, we set ourselves on the path to
goodness, revelation and difference from others in
general. `Vinaya' will be the virtue that tells us what is
appropriate and inappropriate to do or say or look at or
eat.
R2 Definition: Self-Discipline
When people think of Precepts, they often mistakenly
think that Precepts are nothing more than prohibitions.
In fact the meaning of the Pali word for `Precepts' i.e.
'sElal means 'the norm' or `cooling'. Precepts mean
the level of virtue that is normal for human beings to
have. It is a norm that distinguishes men from savages
or from animals. It is for this reason that we
differentiate `vinaya' from 'sEla' by calling the latter
"self-discipline". As we shall see "self-discipline" is the
result of training yourself in "discipline". It is a state of
mind rather than a set of rules to follow.
R3 The Difference between Discipline & Self-Discipline
Discipline is the means by which we restrain (the
manifesting of) unwholesome actions and speech. When
one is new to discipline, the mind is usually still
reluctant. Many thoughts will go through the mind to
protest at the inconvenience of behaving in a disciplined
way. Such thoughts do not constitutea breach of
discipline because they are not manifest. Apart from
protecting
the practitioner from degradation of
behaviour into any of the Four Defilements of Action
[kammakilesa], discipline will gradually channel the
mind into the development of "self-discipline".
Self-discipline is the attainment of restraint of
unwholesome thought as well as unwholesome action
and speech. At this point there is no further reluctance
in the mind any more. One has managed to be "a
teacher to oneself" sufficiently well to be able to police
one's body, speech and mind without the need for any
further rules or regulations to force such behaviours.
B.4 Different Types of Discipline
There are different sets of codes of conduct which can
be used for training in discipline. Some are suitable for
laypeople. Others are suitable for monks. They work on
the principle of the "principle of limi
tation" because as KierIcegaard wrote in Either/Or:
A Fragment of Life: Pan One (1843):
"The more a person limits themselves,the more
resourceful he becomes" (p.289-91)
In Buddhism, it is not by arbitrary rules that we limit
ourselves — we choose rules that also ensure protection
of the human dignity of ourselves, others and society —
but it is true that the more intensive the level of
practice, the more rules of training we tend to keep.
B.4.I Discipline for Householders
BA.I.1 Five Precepts
The Five Precepts [palica-sEla] are the basic set of
discipline advocated for every Buddhist. The Five
Precepts are much older than Buddhism, but were
adopted by Buddhism amongst many other religions as
the core practice for moral conduct. Elements of the
same principles are found in the Ten Commandments,
Islamic Law and even Hindu practices. This is because
the Five Precepts protect against a person taking
advantage of the weaknesses of himself and others.
There is nothing that people love more than their own
life, their possessions, their spouse and trust. There is
nothing that disables people more than the loss of their
own clear conscience. These five weaknesses in human
relationships are guarded by the Five Precepts. Such
weaknesses are not exclusive to Buddhists, but apply
for all people in the world, therefore the Five Precepts
are the fundemental bedrock of all morality. The
Precepts themselves consist of five rules of training:
1. Not to kill living beings
2. Not to steal
3. Not to commit adultery
4. Not to tell lies
5. Not knowingly to drink alcohol or consume in-
toxicants.
By keeping the Five Precepts people can ensure
harmony for society and also prevent many of the roots
of suffering. The Precepts bring coolness to the mind
and body — there is no burning caused by suffering in
body and mind as the result.
EFTA00286592
The Five Precepts share the same Pali word -paiicasEla"
as the five principles upon which Sukarno founded the
Indonesian Constitution — but don't go thinking that
Indonesian Law is founded on Buddhist Principles because
on closer examination, the five basic principles of the
Indonesian Constitution turn out to be something else
completely.
The Five Precepts are intended to be kept by Buddhist
householders on a daily basis.
B.4.1.2 Eight Precepts
The Eight Precepts are a set of rules of training which
expand on the Five Precepts with adjustment of the
third and fifth precepts and addition of the sixth,
seventh and eighth. The Precepts themselves consist of
eight rules of training:
I. Not to kill living beings
2. Not to steal
3. Not to be uncelibate
4. Not to tell lies
5. Not to drink alcohol or consume intoxicants
6. Not to take meals between midday and dawn
7. Not to indulge in romantic entertainment or im-
modesty
8. Not to be indulgent in one's sleeping habits
They are intended to be kept by Buddhist householders
during times of intensified training, especially on
meditation retreats or for self-purification on a periodic
basis, such as one or twice a week. Eight precepts is
sometimes called `uposatha-sEla' where the Eight
Precepts are kept for three days before, during and after
one of the quarter moon days. The only real difference
is the length of time one expects to keep them. The
content is the same but for uposatha-sEla, usually, one
will only keep them on the MI moon days with the
possibility of one day before for preparation and one
day after for debriefing. For Eight Precepts the length
of time the precepts are kept has no special duration.
11.4.2 Discipline for Monastics
11.4.2.1 Ten Precepts
The Ten Precepts are a set of rules of training which
expand on the Eight Precepts with adjustment of the
seventh precept and addition of the tenth. The
Precepts themselves consist of ten rules of training:
I. Not to kill living beings
2. Not to steal
3. Not to be uncelibate
4. Not to tell lies
5. Not to drink alcohol or consume intoxicants
6. Not to take meals between midday and dawn
7. Not to indulge in romantic entertainment
8. Not to indulge in immodesty
9. Not to be indulgent in one's sleeping habits
10. Not to handle gold or silver
They are intended to be kept by Buddhist novices on a
daily basis
BA2.2 Two-Hundred & Twenty-Seven Precepts
As Buddhists train themselves as laypeopleand as
monks, Buddhist spiritual discipline can be divided into
two parts accordingly: discipline for the homeless
[artagAriyavinaya] and discipline for the householder
[agAriyavinaya]. The monks have special discipline in
keeping with their aim to reach an end of defilements
within the shortest possible time. For the monastic
community, eradication of defilements in the mind is
intensive, so the self-discipline of monastics is intensive
accordingly. The 227 Precepts are a set of rules of
training which expand on the Ten Precepts. They are
intended to be kept by fully-ordained Buddhist monks
on a daily basis.
Cl Components of Five Precepts
In the keeping of Five Precepts, householders often feel
guilty when they mistakenly do unwholesome things —
they don't know whether it means they have broken
their Precepts. Some people accidentally run over a
stray dog while they are driving because they happen to
be in a hurry and wonder whether it breaks the
Precepts. Some women know that they have never
taken the possession of others without asking (i.e. they
have never stolen) but they wonder if taking money
from their husband without asking is breaking the
Precepts. The Components of Five Precepts explained
below are an attempt to answer this genre of
questions.Below you will find descriptions of the
factors involved
EFTA00286593
in breaking each of the Precepts. All factors must be
present in order for the Precept to be broken.:
C.1.1 First Precept: Not Killing
In order to break the Precept of not killing, your action
has to consist of five components:
I. The victim must really be alive: Suppose there is a
certain dog we have hated for a long time. Every time
we see it it has barked us, chased us and bitten us. We
think that the dog is alive, but in fact it has already died.
Someone else had just shot the dog dead that very
morning. It is lying dead in the road, but we were not to
know that. Seeing it lying in the road we think to
ourselves, "This time we can get our own back on the
dog," and we reverse the car over the dog. In this case
we have not managed to break the Precepts because it
had already died long ago of other causes.
2. We are aware that the victim is alive: Sometimes we
misunderstand that an animal is already dead, so you
think that a cremation is in order. You throw the body
of the animal into the flames
— but it is not really dead. However we were not to
know that. This time the animal does really die!
Again, such an action does not break the Precepts.
3. We have the intention to kill the victim: Supposing
you run over an animal killing it accidentally, because
there is no intention to kill (you could not avoid it),
again the Precepts are not broken.
4. We put in the effort to kill the victim: You have to put
in the effort to kill, if you are to break the Precepts.
You have to really aim the gun and pull the trigger if
you are to create the necessary conditions to break the
Precepts.
5. The victim dies in the way intended: As the result of
our efforts, the animal must really die if the Precepts
are to be broken. If you shoot to kill, but the result is
only to break an arm or leg, the Precepts are not yet
broken.
C1.2 Second Precept: Not Stealing
In order to break the Precept of not stealing, your
action has to consist of five components:
1. There is art owner who is possessive about that ob-
ject: If you are in the forest where there are objects of
which no-one is the clear owner it is all right to take
them.
2. The perpetrator knows the object has someone pos-
sessive of it: People can even be possessive of a
favourite rag. If for some reason you cannot find the rag
you usually use, often you feel irritated or angry. In the
past there was an agreement between market gardeners
as follows — whatever they plant, whether it may be
bananas or sugar cane or aubergines or chillis, if anyone
walks through the field and feels they want to eat some
of the crop, they are allowed to help themselves to as
much as they can eat, but it is prohibited to take any in
your pockets or in a bag to eat in the home. It is said
that there is only one eater of stolen food who steals
food and takes it home to eat and that is a stray dog.
3. The perpetrator has the intention to steal: Even the
intention to steal starts to cloud the mind.
4. The perpetrator makes the effort to steal the object:
This means trying to find devious strategies and
actually putting those strategies into practice.
5. The perpetrator obtains the object in keeping with
his intention.
C1.3 Third Precept: Not Committing Adultery
In order to break the Precept of not committing
adultery, your action has to consist of four components:
I. The object of the affection must be a man or woman
who is prohibited: So what do we mean by a partner
who is prohibited? There are four sorts of women who
are prohibited to men
•
married women;
•
women who are still in the care of their parents;
•
women who lifestyle prohibits sexual intercourse,
such as nuns or female prisoners.
•
women related to us such as our mother or
our sister or ow daughter and three types of men
prohibited to women:
•
any man who is not your own husband;
•
men whose lifestyle prohibits sexual intercourse
such as monks.
EFTA00286594
• men who are related to us
2. The perpetrator has the intention to have sexual in-
tercourse with that person;
3. The perpetrator makes the effort to have sexual
intercourse (e.g. removes his clothes)
4. There is a joining of the sexual organs.
In fact there is no man or women born in the world who
has no connections except for the one who is already
married to you. No-one else is the legitimate subject for
sexual intercourse — not in the bar nor the night club
— even prostitutes are prohibited (consider respect for
human dignity and fair economics and you will
understand why) — there are no such things as
`wayside flowers' free to be picked by anyone.
CL4 Fourth Precept: Not Telling Lies
In order to break the Precept of not telling lies, your
speech has to consist of four components:
1. Saying something that is not true
2. Having the intention to misrepresent the truth
3. Making the effort to misrepresent the truth.
4. The listener understands what you have said.
The damage of lying comes from the chain reaction it
causes: inorder to lie to someone once, you have to lie
to yourself first three times. The first time you lie to
yourself is in order to prepare yourself to tell a lie. You
have to make up the story and convince yourself first.
The second time you have to lie to yourself is when you
meet the person who you are going to lie to. Thirdly,
you have to remember what lies you have told to who,
because next time you meet them you have to tell them
things consistent with that first lie, or else your
dishonesty will be discovered. If the lie is an important
one, sometimes you will have to remember it for years.
The result of being a liar is that eventually you will lose
your self-confidence because you have lied to yourself
until you have become used to it. At the end of your
life, your memory becomes so blurred to the truth that
you end up suffering from senile dementure as the re-
sult of the mental hypocrisy you have accumulated
throughout the course of your life.
C.1.5 Fifth Precept: Not Drinking Alcohol
In order to break the Precept of not drinkingalcohol,
your action has to consist of five components:
I. The liquid drunk must be alcohol
2. The person must know that it is alcohol.
3. The person must have the intention to drink it
4. The person must make the effort to drink it
S. The alcohol must be swallowed.
For the purposes of the fifth Precept, not only alcohol
and heedlessness-inducing intoxicants are prohibited,
but also such drugs such as heroine, opium, maruana
etc.. If you consider tobacco from the point of view of
this Precept in an objective way, you will find that
smoking tobacco must be avoided too. Those who
become addicted to anything like tobacco will find
themselves in difficulty when they come to practice
meditation on a retreat where there is no opportunityto
smoke. Some people say that they smoke without being
addicted — and they have been smoking without
addiction continuously for the last ten years!
C /.6 Seriousness of Breaking Precepts
In addition, breaking a Precept may be more or less
serious dependent on an additional three factors:
L the amount of effort invested in breaking the
Precept: the more the effort invested in a deed, the
more serious is the breaking of that Precept. To kill a
large animal is more serious than to kill a small animal
because it takes more effort.
2. the gratitude or ingratitude in breaking the Precept:
the more an action expresses ingratitude, the greater
will be the seriousness of breaking the Precept.
Wringing the neck of the cock which crowed to wake
you up every morning at dawn to go to school until you
got yourself a university degree is worse than wringing
the neck of another cock you have never known before.
Thus one should be very careful not to disregard the
debt of gratitude owed to others. If that person or
animal is one that is useful — especially if it has been
helpful to us personally in the past.
3. The strength of the intention behind breaking the
Precept: if you kill an ant by pulling each leg out
EFTA00286595
one by one and then killing it, it is worse than killing
the ant outright in one fell swoop. To kill a mosquito
by slapping it is not as bad as putting a candle flame
to the wings of the mosquito and leaving it in pain to
wriggle to death for the next three days. If a person
kills with vengeance and cruelty, it is more serious
than for killing out of vengeance in cold blood. If
someone kills someone with a single shot, it is not
so bad as someone who tortures someone to death.
Thus even in the past, they would try to find quick
ways of execution so that they could reduce the evil
accrued by the executioner. (Best of all is not to
have to kill the prisoner at all).
C2 Components of Eight Precepts
C.2.I Differences between Five and Eight Precepts
The following differences are found between the
components of Precepts shared between the Five and
Eight Precepts:
The Third Precept: Unchastity: The first difference
between the Five Precepts and the Eight Precepts
concerns the Third Precept. Immoral sexual relations
[kAmesu micchAchAra] are replaced by abstention from
any sexual relations (brahmacariyA — lit.
Brahma-faring). For the Third Precept of the Eight
Precepts there are only two components:
I. You have the intention of having sexual rela-
tions.
2. There is a joining of the sexual organs. In this case
it makes no difference whether your partner is your
husband or wife. It will cause your Precepts to be
broken. If either or both husband and wife are
training themselves in the Eight Precepts it is usual
for them to sleep apart. This form of training is
important because for most people in the world who
lack control over their own minds, for most of the
time, their thoughts and action are dictated by the
defilements of sensual indulgence. The five precepts
already teaches you to be contented with your
spouse. The Eight Precepts goes further with this
training by offering sixth, seventh and eighth
If all four of these components are present then the
Precepts to help play a supporting role in the
reduction of attachment to sensual stimuli.
The Fifth Precept: Not Drinking Alcohol : Another dif-
ference between Five Precepts and Eight Precepts
concerns the fifth Precept. For Five Precepts the fifth
Precept has five components, but for the Eight Precepts,
there are only four components as follows:
I. The liquid drunk must be alcohol
2. The person must have the intention to drink it
3. The person must make the effort to drink it
4. The alcohol must be swallowed.
You will see that for the Eight Precepts it is no
longer necessary to know that the drink is alcohol in
order to cause the fifth Precept to be broken.
C.2.2 Sixth Precept: Refraining from Untimely
Eating
It is commonly asked by housewives who keep the
Eight Precepts whether they are allowed to taste the
food they are preparing for their husbands in the
evening. Sometimes to taste and to eat food are not the
same (except for the person who tastes half a plate of
food and still doesn't know the flavour!)
I. It must be midday of one day to the dawn of the next:
The dawn signals the changing of the day for Buddhists
— technically the earliest time that if you go out into
the open, and stretch out your arm, you can see the lines
on your hand clearly without having to use a torch or
the time at dawn when you can first distinguish the
leaves of trees as being of different shades of green.
2. The substance eaten is solid food (chewable): This
second component has some exceptions i.e. chewable
food that is allowed. Exceptions include refined sugar,
sugar cane juice, tamarinds, embolic myrobalan, nutgall
or pickled ginger. For those who might have dietary
problems if their stomach is completely empty, cheese
or butter is allowed (but not cheese sandwiches!)
3. The effort is made to eat the food
4. The food is swallowed.
EFTA00286596
sixth Precept will be broken.The point of keeping the
sixth precept is to remove another possible risk of
sleepiness as a hindrance to one's meditation practice
by avoiding a heavy evening meal. If we eat too much,
it will give us more energy than we can use and this
contributes to ease of sexual arousal. If you were to
miss a meal once a week by forgoing an evening meal,
you will find that the excess food will be burned up.
C.2.3 Seventh Precept: Not indulging in entertainment
or immodesry,
Indulging in entertainment means specifically: singing,
dancing or playing musical instruments yourself,
watching others doing the same (excepting the national
anthem or music in honour of the monarch). Immodesty
means wearing perfume, jewelry, flowers or makeup
(except talcum powder for medicinal purposes). Some
people ask if they can watch the television when
keeping the eight precepts — the answer is that you
have to be selective about what you watch. You can
watch news but don't go watching a cabaret or certain
sorts of advertising. You have to avoid contact with
cosmetics that are meant for beautification instead of
for health. You shouldn't wear perfume, make-up,
flowers, hair dye. Wearing talcum powder should just
be to prevent athlete's foot or abrasion — not for
beautification. The components of this seventh precept
are any of the following:
1. Playing musical instruments, dancing or singing
romantic songs yourself
2. Watching entertainment consisting of singing, danc-
ing or romantic music.
or all of the following:
1. There are cosmetics or perfume
2. The reason is not because of poor
Bab* wear the cosmetics or perfume
C.2.4 Eighth Precept: Not engaging in Indolent
Sleeping Habits
The following are the components of the eighth
precept:
I. The sleeping place is large or high
2. You know that the sleeping place is large or high
3. Sitting or lying down on that place
You will notice that not only lying on a soft mattress is
forbidden but also sitting on such a mattress, because
they contribute to making the mind wander.The softer
the mattress on which you sleep, the less you feel like
getting up in the morning. As you sleep without
mindfulness, it will start to undermine the purity of
your third precept. However, nowadays houses
commonly have sofas which are soft. If you were to be
strict, sitting on a sofa would be forbidden, but for the
sake of manners, it is better to accept others hospitality
than to take all the cushions off the sofa and throw them
away. At the same time we should take good care of our
presence of mind. We have to think of both our Pre-
cepts and the appropriateness in any situation.
Sometimes hotels have nowhere but beds upon which to
sleep. In other places it may be too cold to sleep on the
floor without anything under you in the way of
insulation. Thus consider appropriateness in each
situation.
C3 Monastic Discipline
C.3.I The Objectives behind Monastic Discipline
A.v.70)
The Buddha created the monastic discipline for ten
reasons:
2
3
munity;
4
To maintain the happiness of monks who love
discipline;
5
To give protection from defilements that might
increase in the present time (for example if monks are
allowed to speak one-to-one with females, there may be many
new problems resulting);
6
To give protection from defilements that might
increase in the future (for example if monks are allowed to
speak one-to-one with females, later it may lead the monk to
spend all their time thinking of that female.);
To maintain peace in the monastic community;
To restrain stubborn and shameless disciples;
To maintain the happiness of the monastic com-
EFTA00286597
7.
To instil faith in the public who are not yet
faithful;
8.
To increase the faith of the public who are al-
ready faithful;
9.
To maintain the Teaching of the Buddha
steadfast;
I0. To maintain discipline itself;
C3.2 Components of Monastic Discipline
Although it would be possible to give the components
for each of the 227 monastic Precepts (same principles
apply as for those of the Five and Eight Precepts) there
is insufficient space to do so. However, to demonstrate
that monastic discipline is more than just the code of
conduct, the four components of monastic practice are
described below:
C.3.2.I Restraint according to monastic code of
conduct [pAEimokkhasaOvara]: The `pAEimoldchal is
the set of rules of training which the Buddha gave to
monks for the restraint of their bodily actions and
speech. As soon a monk ordains, whether he knew the
rules or not previously, it is immediately his duty to
make sure he knows and abides by the 227 rules of
conduct. The 227 Rules therein can be divided into
three degrees of seriousness:
I. Rules entailing defeat [pArAjika]: There are four
rules in this category: killing people, stealing, sexual
intercourse and claims of mental attainments. Any
monk who infringes the rules of this category
immediately in no longer a monk any more. Whether
he is disrobed or not, he is no longer a monk any
more. It is the heaviest infringement of monastic
conduct possible.
2. Rules entailing an initial and subsequent
meeting of the order [salghAdiscsa]: This category
of rules of training is less serious than the previous,
but can still be considered evil and coarse. When a
monk breaks one of these rules, they must confess
their transgression to the rest of the monastic
community. If a monk who has infringed such a rule
still has not admitted his fault to the rest of the
monastic community, then he is still not returned to
purity. The reason for this is to show that you are
aware of your fault and will not do it again. Only
then can the monk be re-admitted to the monastic
community.
3. Rules entailing confession: These include "Rules entailing
confession" IpAcittiya), "Rules entailing forfeiture and
confession " inissaggiya-pAcittiyaj: -Rules entailing ac-
knowledgment" IpAtidmantya); "Minor Transgressions"
[dukkata), and:"Wrong Speech" WubbhAsita). For these
infringements of the monastic conduct there is no need for
monks to confess in front of the monastic assembly. By
confessing to another monk the offending monk can be
returned to purity again. In fact, confession doesn't wash away
the evil caused by infringement of the discipline, but it helps
to give the monk the mindfulness not to infringe the same rule
of conduct again. Confession is like the healing of an open
wound — but the scar still remains. Best of all is never to
break the rules of monastic conduct.
C.3.2.2 Restraint of the senses [indriyasaOvara] This
means specifically the restraint of the eyes, ears, nose,
tongue, skin contact and mind. Monks should not look
at inappropriate things: if a monk sees a couple petting
at the side of the road, he shouldn't stay and watch
them but should quickly go somewhere else. Monks
should not listen to inappropriate things — there is no
need to go listening to gossip that doesn't concern him.
Monks should not smell things that are inappropriate or
taste things that are inappropriate: mostly this concerns
food and not just eating things for the taste. Monks
should not touch or have skin contact with things that
are inappropriate: not using rubbing creams just for the
smoothness of the skin or to take pleasure in touching
soft and comfortable things. Monks should not use their
mind to think of inappropriate things. In other words
monks should not find pleasure or displeasure from the
use of the senses.
C.3.2.3 Purity of livelihood [AjEvaparisuddhi] Monks
have to make their living, but not by cultivating fields
or earning a wage. The proper way of making a living
for a monk is to go on almsround.
EFTA00286598
All monks know this but some think that almsround is
inconvenient because sometimes alms are donated,
sometimes not. To set oneself up as a fortune teller or a
seller of lottery tickets somehow seems more convenient!
— but it is not pure livelihood for monks. Lotteries are a
form of gambling and gambling is one of the roads to ruin.
Thus if monks encourage and make their living out of lot-
teries or lottery numbers, don't go supporting them
— they are in breach of monastic discipline. Fortune
telling by monks is no better than lottery tips. Fortune
telling is a pseudo-science of statistics and is not
grounded on truth. Thus fortune telling is a sort of
guesswork which is not much better than lying.
C.3.2.4 Reflection on the Requisites [paccaya-
paccavekkhaAa]: This is the practice by monks of
recollection or reflection on the four different sorts of
requisites before use. The requisites of clothing, food,
shelter and medicine are the basic needs of life. Monks
must reflect that the requisites are nothing more than
needs to keep the body going, in the same way as fuel
keeps a car mobile. Most people use the requisites of
life without distinguishing between need and want —
but for monks the proper practice is to use the requisites
to train oneself in the consideration of moderation.
D.1 Levels of Avoidance
Properly practised, discipline will give rise to
self-discipline. Where discipline is the avoidance of un-
wholesomeness by external means, self-discipline is the
avoidance of unwholesomeness by internal means. To
distinguish between the two, we identify three different
ways in which unwholesomeness can be avoided (virati):
L Avoidance on the spur of the moment
[sampattavirati): this is a form of discipline whereby
one refrains from unwholesome action or speech
spontaneously without having requested any
Precepts in advance. If you see a fish washed up on
the beach and you decide on the spur of the moment
to throw it back into the
water out of compassion, rather than killing — this
is the sort of avoidance which we call 'avoidance on
the spur of the moment'. Perhaps you would turn in
a lost wallet with all of the money instead of keeping
it for yourself, for fear of being accused of stealing.
Such avoidance of evil occurs as the result of fear
and shame of evil or the consequences of evil
[hiri-ottappa];
2.
Avoidance
having
requested
the
Precepts
[samadAnavirati]: this is a form of discipline whereby one
refrains from unwholesome action or speech for fear of
breaking Precepts one has previously requested from a monk.
Some people simply make a vow to keep the Precepts each
day in front of the shrine. Even if someone were to give you a
bottle of beer, because you have taken the five precepts that
day, you will turn down the offer for fear of breaking your
vow;
3. Avoidance through transcending [samuccedavirati]:
this is a form of self-discipline whereby one no longer
has any temptation to do evil, because the mind has
reached a stage of purity and transcendental attainment
whereby no unwholesome intention can arise in the
mind any more to drive unwholesome speech or action.
This is absolute avoidance of evil of the type achieved
by those who have attained the stages of Buddhist
sainthood.
D.2
Refraining from
the
Tenfold
Path
of
Unwholesomeness
The result of practising discipline until attainingself-
discipline is to remove oneself from the influence of the
Tenfold
Path
of
Unwholesomeness
[akusala-
dhammapatha], the first four of which can be rec-
ognized
as
the
Four
Defilements of Action
[kammakilesa]:
Killing: e.g. killing people, fishing, hunting and
cruelty to animals
2
Stealing: e.g Thieving, mugging, shoplifting,
corruption and deceit
3
Committing adultery: unfaithfulness to one's
spouse, rape, pre-marital sex
4
Lying: eg. telling lies, exaggeration, forgery
5.
Malicious or divisive gossip: e.g. gossip in a
EFTA00286599
way to turn one person against another, mud-
slinging
6.
Harsh or insulting speech: e.g. name
calling, swearing
7.
Idle chatter: e.g. purposeless babble,
raving, boasting
8.
Covetousness: e.g. considering to get
something one wants in a dishonest way, coveting
others' possessions
9.
Vengeful Thought: e.g. wanting to get
revenge or get your own back
l0. False View: e.g. thinking good and evil to be
nonexistent, thinking you have no debt of gratitude
to your parents, thinking death to be the end of the
story, not believing in the Law of Karma
and to establish oneself in the Tenfold Path of
Wholesomeness [kusaladhammapatha]:
I.
absolutely not
tilling. absolutely not
Stealing absolutely not committing adultery
4.
absolutely not
piing
absolutely not
possipingibsolutely not speaking
darshly. absolutely not idle
Shatter absolutely not thinking to take the possession
of others
9.
absolutely remove yourself from
tengbatidy possession of Right View
E.] Metaphor: Vinaya to knowledge is as a scabbard
to a sword
Even if you have theoretical knowledge and expe-
rience, you need to have an extra virtue to protect
you from using that knowledge in the wrong way
— that virtue is self-discipline. Without self-discipline,
you will apply your knowledge to do immoral things.
The people of old had sayings that:
"If a sharp sword lacks a scabbard, it can harm
even the owner. If a hand-grenade lacks a firing pin
it can kill even the owner. A person of knowledge
and experience can come to an unfortunate end, if
he lacks self-discipline"
E.2 Metaphor: Value of clay is in the value of the
mold
The people of old remarked that a humble lump of clay
in the middle of a field is a strange thing. Unshaped, in
the middle of that field it is without worth. However, if
you put it into moulds of various sorts, it acquires worth
depending on the nature of the mould. If you put the
clay in the mould for a plate or a cup, when it comes
out of the mould, it has acquired some value — it is
something you can use on the table. If you put it into
the mould for a doll, then the resulting doll is of value
and can be used to decorate the house. If you put the
clay into the mould for a Buddha image, the clay is
suddenly transformed into something superior to
household use, but something to be the object of respect
for all who see it. Thus you can see that the better the
mould you subject the clay to, the more value it
acquires. When we come to talk about people instead of
clay, we find that in the same way, the thing that gives
people their value is the self-discipline they abide by.
The greater the degree of self-discipline, the ewmore
they are worth.
EFTA00286600
Blessing Ten:
Artfulness in
Speech
A.INTRODUCTION
Some might think the words coming from our mouths
are relatively unimportant when compared to the
artfulness in "knowledge", "application" and "usage"
discussed in the previous blessings of this grouping.
However, when it comes to "making oneself useful to
society"one cannot avoid communicative skills for
team-building and for passing one's knowledge on to
others.
A.1 Buddhism founded on the tenet of correct speech
Furthermore, it is only due to the care taken in
"communicative skills" that the Buddha's Teaching can
have been passed down across the space of 2,500 years
to the present day and still inspire people. Words can be
true but they may not be pleasant to listen to. If words
are both true and polite, the ancients said that they were
both worth listening to and also worth hearing. If
words, apart from being both true and polite were also
useful, the ancients said that such words apart from
being worth believing and worth hearing are also
worthy of respect — it is hard to find any religion
which analyses speech to such depth.
Al Verbal karma easier to produce than Physical
karma
If you compare the possibilities for doing and saying
good things, you find that the possibilities for good
speech are almost unlimited, more than what we can do
with the body. You can really do many
more good deeds with your speech than your actions or
if you make the mistake of doing evil, you can do much
more evil with your speech than with your body. This
is the reason why the Buddha had to give the art of
speaking its own separate blessing, because of all there
is to be studied.
A.3 Why one mouth is ample
Without understanding the principles of artful speech,
we are wont to say too much. The people of old would
teach small children the way to look at yourself in the
mirror. They would say, don't go looking at how
beautiful or handsome you are — because before long
old age will rob you of all these things. Take a good
look at your own face. You will notice that even though
your eyes have only one function, to look, nature has
given you two. You will notice that even though your
ears have only one function, to hear, nature has also
given you two. You will notice that even though your
nostrils have only one function, to breathe, nature has
given you two. However, your mouth has two
functions, to eat and to talk, but nature has given you
only one mouth. It is as if nature is telling us to use our
mouth in moderation — not to eat too much and not to
say too much!
From our study of self-discipline in Blessing Nine, we
already know to avoid the different sorts of un-
wholesome speech described in the Tenfold Path of
Unwholesomeness [akusaladhammapatha] —
EFTA00286601
these go beyond lying to enumerate no less than four
different sorts of unwholesome speech which should be
avoided:
I. Telling lies
2. Divisive Speech
3. Harsh Speech
4. idle Chatter
B.1 Telling Lies
Telling lies means saying or writing words that are
untrue in order to take advantage of someone else. As
this subject has already been dealt with in Blessing
Nine, no further detail will be repeated here.
B.2 Divisive Speech
Divisive speech or malicious gossip is speaking di-
visively to set one person against another. There are
four components to malicious gossip:
1. There is someone to set against one another;
2. You have the intention to set one side against the
other.
3. You make the effort to speak divisively;
4. You manage to make yourself understood;
The amount of evil involved in speaking divisively
depends on severalfactors:
1. The Debt of Gratitude between the Perpetrator and
the Victim: If you speak in such a way as to cause your
own parents' marriage to break up or to set up one of
your teachers against another or to set one monk
against another, the evil will be very heavy.The degree
to which the victims are divided: If the victims are
completely unable ever to get back together again, the
evil will be very heavy.
2. The Strength of the Intention behind wanting to
cause a division: The stronger the divisive intention,
the heavier will be the evil.
3. The amount of effort put in to making a division. The
more the effort the heavier the evil
B.3 idle Chatter
Idle chatter is speaking purposelessly just to pass the
time. There are two components to idle chatter:
1. To have the intention to talk about something mean-
ingless: Meaningless words are the sort of words
that don't lead a conversation anywhere.
2. Speaking those meaningless words
The seriousness of retribution of idle chatter depends
on the importance of the meaningfulness that you
impede be speaking. Even those who always speak in a
joking way that lacks seriousness don't have to wait for
next life to see the results of their misdeeds — no-one
will take them seriously. The amount of evil involved
in idle chatter depends on several factors:
I. Amount of chatter: The heaviness of the retribution
depends on whether you chatter a lot or a little.
2. How much the speaker is believed: The more others
are taken in by what we say, the worse will be the
retribution.
3. The strength of the intention: The stronger the in-
tention the worse the retribution.
B.4 Harsh Speech
Harsh speech includes swearing or insultingothers to the
degree that it upsets them. Harsh speech even includes
sarcasm and sarcastic comparisons.There are three
components to harsh speech:
i. There is someone to insult
2. The speaker has the angry intention to insult that
person
3. The speaker gets down to insulting that person
The amount of evil involved in speaking harshly
depends on severalfactors:
i. The Debt of Gratitude between the Perpetrator and
the Victim: If you speak in such a way as to insult your
own parents or teachers, the evil will be very
heavy.The evil is also heavy if the victim is of high
mental attainment.
2. Whether the insult is to their face or behind their
back. An insult to someone's face is worse in its
retribution than an insult behind their back.
3. The strength of bad intention behind the insult. The
stronger the bad intention, the worse will be the
retribution.
4. The amount of effort behind the insult
EFTA00286602
B.5 Retribution of insulting those of virtue
There are eleven forms of disasters befalling monks
who (unfoundedly) verbally abuse others who have
already attained the stages of sainthood:
1.
failing to attain the due mental attainments;
2.
falling away from the previous mental attain-
ments;
3.
their Sadhamma will become
diouded; will delude themselves into thinking they have
already attained Sadhamma;
5.
will become discontented with pursuing the
Brahma-faring;
6.
will commit monastic
Ransgressitlegive up the training and fall back into the
low (household) life:
8.
will be struck down by grave
illness; will be struck down by madness or mental
distraction;
10. will commit mortal blunders, and;
11.
has the hell realms as an afterlife destination.
AN.XI.6
Thus if at all possible, whether concerning a monk or
not, never be someone to find fault in others. Always
try to look for the good in others. You may notice the
weaknesses of others. Observe them, remember them
but don't use them as the subject of conversation. If you
are always immersed in the good deeds of others then
even if you try to think of evil things you will be unable
to. You won't be tempted to find fault with that person
or that person to the degree that you end up finding
fault with people who have no fault.
B.6 Disadvantage of saying too much
Most people in the world believe that they are men of
principle. However, when it comes to speaking, many
find that they just say what they feel like. If people do
have a governing principle about the things they say,
then usually they just try to say the things that are
pleasing for the other person to hear. The trouble with
such a principle is that people will always say what is
easiest to say instead of saying the things that need to
be said. Such a principle, when you come to speech at
the level of politicians or those in power will impede
the progress of the
country because politicians are always saying what is
easiest to say instead of speaking out about the things
in society which ought to be changed.
If one has no clear principles then the more you speak,
the more damage you do. The people of old had the
saying that, "The more you say the more trouble you
create." The reason is that when we have already said
all that is beneficial and necessary to say and we keep
on speaking then the next things to come out of our
mouth are worthless or harmful speech such as gossip,
slander, abuse, chatter and lies. Thus the people of old
said, "keep what you have to say to mimimum and you
will mimimize your problems. However if you refuse to
speak at all then no-one understands you!" Thus we all
have to say something, but for our own benefit we
should clearly understand the nature of speech and the
principles of artful speech that is beneficial so say so
that we can be confident in selecting the things we say
or keep to ourselves.
CI Definition
By artful speech we mean speech that has been care-
fully filtered and distilled by the mind as good, before it
is allowed to pass ow lips. It is not only speech that is
better than nothing. It is speech that has been carefully
selected by many criteria. It must be good from every
viewpoint — so good that it cannot have any fault
found in it. The reason why we must be careful with
our speech is that however good ow intentions if we
say something in the wrong way we can still upset the
people around us because they cannot see what we are
thinking. All they can pick up is the words by which we
express those intentions.
C2 Components of speech
From the meaning communicated by the things people
say we can identify three major components:
I. The Intention behind the Words: You can see
whether the intention behind the things someone is
saying is based on greed (e.g. they would like to get
something from someone), hatred (e.g. in order to try to
harm someone) or delusion (e.g. out of the envy of
someone). These are all dam-
EFTA00286603
aging forms of speech. If speech is used in a good
way then the intention must be good. Good speech
may be said out of compassion.
2. The Son of IVords Chosen: The more true they are the
less false they are. The more polite speech is the less rude
it is and vice versa. If the usefulness of words is reduced
then they become more superfluous. Thus you can classify
the speech of anyone in the world in terms of these three
variables no matter what language it is spoken in:
I. True or Untrue
2. Polite or Rude
3. Useful or SuperfluousWords are either true or
false.
3. The Occasion Chosen to say them: Sometimes this
means whether what is said is appropriate to the time
available and the place where it is said.
C.3 Qualities of artful speech
Applying the general components of speech toartful
speech, we find that there are five components. If
speech is truly good it must be good to five levels. It is
not like a one-star hotel which is better than a hotel
with no stars. If we are truly principled in the things we
say, then every word we say must be 'five star'. If it is
any less, we will not let it pass our lips.:
I. Speech must always be based on the intention of
compassion: If the intention behind our speech is not
compassion for the hearer then those words are better
not said. Think for example of the sort of things you
say when you are angry with someone and you will see
that if you are angry its better to keep your mouth
closed.
2. Speech must be true: (sort of words spoken) Sup-
posing we would like someone to do a good deed
(i.e. we have compassion for them) but to get them
to do so we tell a white lie then it is no longer artful
speech. Some people would like to cheer up a child
so they say "Oh! Here comes the most precious boy
in the world!" This could not yet be counted as artful
speech — it is no more than words to fool children.
The same thing even goes for telling "white lies" to
fool people into doing beneficial things or the
meaningless
words exchanged between people in love.
3. Speech must be polite (sort of words spoken): If it is
not polite it can never be artful speech. It is speech
which ought to stay in the market place.
4. Speech must be useful (sort of words spoken): It
should not something be said just to float on the breeze.
Does it create benefit by making the mind of the
speaker and the listener brighter? Does it create benefit
both in this lifetime and the next? This doesn't mean
that we tell lies for our own benefit but by doing so we
take advantage of others. Both speaker and listener
must benefit as the result of the words spoken. Why
bother telling someone that Mr. So-and-so is involved
in corruption when everyone throughout the town al-
ready knows it to be a fact.
5. Speech must be at the appropriate time and oc-
casion (the occasion chosen to say them): Even if you
say the right thing but it is at the wrong time then you
cannot consider it to be artful speech. You might want
to give your husband or wife or friend a useful piece of
criticism but if you do it in front of their boss it turns
advice into a disgrace for that person. If you want to
give your boss a warning you have to choose the
appropriate time or else it might be seen as insult.
C.4 Special Considerations when giving criticism
The subject of appropriate occasion is something that is
very hard to judge. In societies where there must be
quality control and there does need to be evaluation and
criticism of sloppy practices, then often one cannot wait
for the right opportunity to come along by accident. In
such a case you have to do your best to create the
opportunity. Apart from keeping to all the five
principles already mentioned, there are two extra
considerations which you should bear in mind which
can help to create favourable circumstances for giving
criticism:
I. Praise them before you criticise them: A piece of
criticism may take three pieces of praise to balance up
the good feeling lost. The praise should always come
first. Don't forget that others have feelings too and even
if someone has made a lot of faults you shouldn't
criticise them for any
EFTA00286604
more than two faults per day or else you may have a
resignation on your hands.
2. Smile when you give the criticism: Don't criticise
out of anger.
If you ever say something to someone and you are
surprised that it makes them angry, try checking the
words that you said using the 'five-star measure of
artful speech mentioned above. If you do not filter your
use of words carefully, then your wordsmay cause harm
to others. On other occasions, like a cup and a saucer
must be of a matching quality, sometimes situations
require words of a matching quality too. Sometimes it is
good to speak in a way that is polite, but sometimes a
situation doesn't require it because in some exceptional
circumstances, five star language is not appreciated.
CS Those who don't appreciate artful speech
It is not as if you should speak in the most polite
possible way to every person you meet. Some people
cannot stand to hear polite language and may even
criticize you because of it. They hear someone speaking
clearly and accuse that person of being 'affected'. In
such cases you might need to lower the grade of
politeness of the language you use to make your
language more direct, to shock the person into
awareness. However, the rest of the four components of
good speech must remain intact. The following sort of
people might need to hear direct speech:
I. Those who have a superiority complex or like to
pretend that everyone is equal: Those who think they
are God's gift to the world. Such people will not profit
from flowery speech. Sometimes they need to be
shocked by the words they hear in order to change
themselves for the better.
2. Those whose mind is blinded to the virtues of the
speaker by their lack of faith for that person: This is
especially true if someone's mind is still attached to
practices that are diametrically opposed to the ones you
are advocating. Thus you can speak flowery words until
you are red in the face and they will still not be inspired
by your words. Even so you must not give up trying to
help such people!
3. Those who are in the midst of depression: For such
people, flowery words are of no more use than flute
music to a buffalo.
C6 Praiseworthy Talk
In Buddhism, the most useful sort of talk istalk of
virtue by one who exemplifies the virtue they are
talking about. The Buddha taught that ten types of
conversation which are praiseworthy are:
1. one who wants little and talks on wanting little
[appiccha];
2. one who is contented and talks on contentment
[santuEEhi];
3. one who is loves seclusion and talks on seclusion
[paviveka];
4. one who loves solitude and talks on solitude
[asaOsagga];
5. one who strives energetically and talks on en-
ergetic striving [viriya];
6. one who is self-disciplined and talks on
self-discipline [sEla];
7. one who has attained concentration and talks on
concentration [samAdhi];
8. one who has attained wisdom and talks on wisdom
[paluiA];
9. one who is has attained liberation and talks on
liberation [vimutti], and;
10.one who is has attained seeing and knowing of
liberation and talks, on seeing and knowing of
liberation [vimuttifiAAadassana].
C.7 Characteristics of a peace envoy
One of the most useful applications of artful speech is
to make the world a more peaceful place. Whenever
there is conflict in society the reasons for people to do
evil things are multiplied manyfold. If we ever have the
opportunity to encourage people to live together in
peace and harmony it is something very meritorious for
us to do. Anyone who is fitting to be an envoy of this
sort should have eight characteristics which we should
learn and train ourselves in so that we may be ready if
ever we have the opportunity to take on this duty. In the
future, no matter how many lifetimes we are born for
we will always have friends and relatives who are
peaceful and harmonious:
EFTA00286605
1. You must be able to listen to others opinions and
not refuse their point of view: Some people like to hear
only the sound of their own voice. They don't let others
get a word in edgeways. Of course they can never find
anyone to listen to them. Before becoming a good
speaker you must train yourself to listen to other people
first. Whether what another person is saying is right or
wrong, at least give them the chance to say what they
have to say and in that way you will be able to pick up
the jist of what they have to say.
2. When you do speak, you must be able to capture
your listener's attention and hold it: That doesn't
mean just spending all your time listening to what
others have to say but when it comes to your turn to
speak then you should see to it that what you are saying
is listened to. Don"t go speaking in a way that is
irritating so that no one can listen to you for long.
3. Know how to set the boundaries for what you have
to say to the minimum: If you are not able to limit the
scope of what you have to say then it is like driving a
cart along to chase a rabbit. This is what it is always
like if the objective of what you have to say is not clear.
There will be no end to what you have to say. Political
negotiations will go on for seven days and seven nights
and still reach no conclusion.
4. You must be able to remember what you have to
say: Never use a forgetful person as your emissary.
5. Understand the detail of everything you have to
say: It is not enough simply to be able to memorize the
details.
6. Having the ability to make others understand what
you have to say: This really takes a lot of ability. You
must be artful in the use of metaphor and artful speech.
7. You must be skilled in selecting to say only useful
things and cutting out the rest
8. By habit you must be someone who is not fond of
starting arguments: Never send anyone with a short
temper as your ambassador unless you are planning to
start a war.
Finally, in the words of the Buddha
- An ambassador is one who even in the company of
the harsh-spoken, can remain unscathed and
unruffled, makes no mistake in his use of words,
doesn't conceal information, has the ability to
alleviate the doubts of others and who is not angered
by questioning."
(Vin. Culavagga 7/201)
C.8 Buddhist Principles of Public Speaking
There are many different recipes for success for public
speaking in the world — including those of the
Toastmasters or Carnegie, but in general, they do not
have principles which deviate far from the principals
already outlined above — except for aspects of the
delivery. Buddhist principlesof public speaking
emphasize the following components:
1. Sound body: This includes all aspects of non-verbal
communication
2. Sound speech: This means speech that is pleasant to
the ears, eyes and mind of the listener:
I. Being pleasant to the ear means possessing "Five
Star" speech and includes the use of words, use of
intonation and the rhythm of what is said.
2. Being pleasant to the eye means the speaker hav-
ing a pleasant personality and use of expression.
3. Being pleasant to the mind includes appropriate
choice of subject, being prepared, having one's
thoughts organized and structuring the speech into
three parts: an introduction, main body and
conclusion.
3. Sound mind: Exemplifying the virtues which you
talk about.
Buddhist public speaking is not just talking to be
understood or believed, but for the enjoyment and the
inspiration of the listener to do good deeds.
D. I Metaphor: A fish lives & dies because of its mouth
A fish can have long life dependant on its mouth which
it uses to feed. However, because the selfsame mouth
and its greed for bait, it swallows the hook which
brings its life to an end. In the same
EFTA00286606
way, if we use our mouth for artful speech, it can bring
us success and prosperity in life, but sometimes even a
word of unwholesome speech from the same mouth can
cost us our lives.
D.2 Metaphor: It is not just knowing the right thing to
A smart person is not a person who knows when to say
the right thing — they must also know when to keep
their silence. A knowledge of the things not to be said
is more important for an artful speaker, even more than
a knowledge of the things to be said.
D.3 Ex.: Condemned manwho said too much
The less you say, the less risk you run of saying
something foolish, even dangerous. In 1825 a new czar,
Nicholas I, ascended the throne of Russia. A rebellion
immediately broke out, led by liberals demanding that
the country modernize — that its industries and civil
structures catch up with the rest of Europe. Brutally
crushing the rebellion (the Decembrist Uprising),
Nicholas I sentenced one of its leaders, Kondraty
Ryleyev, to death. On the day of the execution. Ryleyev
stood on the gallows, the noose round his neck. The
trap-door opened — but as Ryleyev dangled, the rope
broke, dashing him to the ground. At the time, events
like this were considered signs of providence or
heavenly will, and a man saved from execution this way
was usually pardoned. As Ryleyev got to his feet,
bruised and dirtied but believing his neck had been
saved, he called out to the crowd, "You see, in Russia
they don't know how to do anything properly, not even
how to make a rope!" A messenger immediately went
to the Winter Palace with news of the failed hanging.
Vexed by this disappointing turnabout, Nicholas I
nevertheless began to sign the pardon. But then: "Did
Ryleyev say anything after this miracle?"the czar asked
the messenger. "Sire," the messenger replied,"he said
that in Russia they don't even know how to make a
rope!" "In that case,"said the Czar, "let us prove the
contrary," and he tore up the pardon. The next day
Ryleyev was hanged again. This time the rope did not
break. Morale: Once the words are out, you cannot take
them back. Keep them under control. Be particularly
careful with sarcasm: The momentary satisfaction you
gain
with biting words will be outweighed by the price you
PaY-
D.4 Ex. NandivisAla JAtaka (J.28)
A tale which has become most famous as one of
sajEsops' Tales, in fact originates from the JAtaka Tale of
NantivisAla, the ox which pulled 100 carts for a wager.
This young ox was miraculously strong ever since it
was born and so the owner had the ox pull 100 carts.
When he found that the ox could pull the carts, the
owner made the ox's ability subject to a wager to a
millionnaire who didn't believe it. However, when it
came to the time to prove the bet, the master said, `Go
ahead and pull the carts, ox!'. Because the ox didn't
like the direct language it refused to move. Even oxen
have feelings. Thus the owner lost the bet. Later the
owner made a second bet, spoke politely to the ox and
won the wager making a profit.
D.5 Et Matka !Atoka (1.315)
There were once four sons of a millionnaire who wanted
to compare their skills of persuasion and competed with
each other in asking for meat from the cart of a butcher.
When the four brothers saw the butcher's cart they thought
to themself that they would like to eat some meat and they
decided to see who could persuade the butcher to give
them some meat.
The first son shouted out to the butcher,"Hey butcher!
Bring me some meat!" The butcher was a kindly man and
he said "Of course but because your words are not sweet
to my ears" he threw the boy some trotters. Everybody
asked him why he gave the boy trotters and he replied that
trotters are tough and have no taste just like the words of
the one who had requested them.
The second son said, "My brother! Please give me
some of your meat to eat." Because the second son had
had the respect to call him his brother then he cut off
some choice meat to give to him.
The third son said, "Oh my father! Please give me some
of your meat to eat." Because the third son had had the
respect to call him his father he cut the heart out of an
ox to give to him.
The fourth son said, "My friend! Please give me
EFTA00286607
some of your meat to eat." The butcher heard his words
and felt pleased. He said that when our ages are so
similar like this, it is closest to the truth to say that we
are friends. To call me 'father' is too much. To call me
'friend' is the most appropriate. So with those words he
gave the whole of his cart to the fourth son. The fourth
son was true to his word and took the butcher to his
house. He said if you have this much generosity to me
then I will be generous to you too —
come and live here if you like — I have a reasonable
amount of wealth to my name therefore if any of your
friends are in distress just tell me and I will help. Well,
it turned out that the butcher had a few unpaid debts so
he was able to pay all those off. The fourth son was a
friend to the butcher for the rest of his life.
This is the benefit accrued to the fourth son who didn't
speak harshly, or patronizingly but appropriately to the
truth of the situation.
EFTA00286608
f
The Fourth.
Group of Blessings
"Harmony in the Family Life"
The fourth group of blessings contains Blessings Eleven to Four-
teen. Nearly all of these concern how we take care of our close fam-
ily and therefore the grouping is sometimes referred to as "Har-
mony in the Family Life". Nested between Group III concerning
"Setting Oneself up in life" and Group V concerning "Becoming a
pillar of society", it is obvious that harmony at home is something
we have to get right if we are truly to be of use to society at large. It
is many an important businessman who has not managed to go as
far as he ought in his career because of being upset or unfulfilled in
his family life. This does not mean that it is necessary to have a
husband or wife and children to make a success in one's life — but
if one does have one's own family, than one has to fulfil one's duty
to them properly. In any case one must fulfil one's duty to one's
parents.
EFTA00286609
Blessing Eleven:
Cherishing our parents
A. INTRODUCTION
A.I Introduction to Blessing Eleven
As we shall see for this blessing on cherishing our
parents, much more than for cherishing husband, wife
or children, the factor of "gratitude" is very important.
According to Buddhist definition, "gratitude" is an
active virtue and to be fulfilled, should be practised in
all of the following stages:
I. Appreciating our Debt of Gratitude to Our Parents
[katatifiE]
2. Repayment of our Debt of Gratitude to Our Par-
ents [katavedE] by:
I. repaying our debt of gratitude to our parents:
physically and spiritually both before they pass
away and after death too
2. Announcing the Goodness of Our Parents
Only when we have done all of these components of
gratitude can we be said to have fulfilled this eleventh
Blessing — and the remainder of the discussion in this
blessing describes the practicality of putting all three
components in practice. In some Buddhist literature,
practising such duties is known as 'filial piety'.
PARENTS?
B.1 Rationale
When we start out in our career of self-development, it
is not obvious what goodness is. In the initial blessings,
we have had to orientate ourselves
to virtue without really knowing what virtue is — let
alone being able to identify virtue in ourselves. In the
beginning, even to be able to associate with good
people is a blessing, because some of their virtues
might brush off on us too. In the beginning we might
not be aware of the virtues in ourselves — it being
much easier to perceive the virtues of others. The
Buddha intended us to take a hard look at ow own
parents who have done so much for us — because
everyone has parents and everyone has received benefit
at their hands. Thus, for our parents more than for
others, virtue will be easy for us to identify. If we are
able to recognize, repay and announce the goodness of
our parents, our familiarity with such virtue will
become all the stronger. Later when we are able to see
the good in our parents, we will be able to see the good
in others. When we are able to see the good in others
we will be able to see the good in ourselves and
develop it further— according to the techniques found
in the higher blessings. Unless we are sensative to a
greater or lesser extent to the goodness other people
express to us, we have little chance of increasing the
sensitivity to the goodness that lies within ourselves.
There is no-one in the world who has done as much for
one as one's parents, so if one is unable to respond to
the good they have done one, then it is unlikely that one
will be able to perceive good in anything else at all. If
our debt of gratitude to our parents is as large as this
and we are unable to see it, that shows that we must be
severely blinded to the good of others.
EFTA00286610
B.2 Taking care of our parents is the most
fundamental of virtues
Repaying the debt of gratitude to our parents is such a
fundemental virtue, that the people of old used it as a
benchmark for judging strangers. Sometimes one has to
know someone for a long, long time before one can
really say we know such a person in depth. However, if
you meet someone for the first time and you find out
that they neglect their parents, you can be sure that they
are unlikely to have any interest in helping anyone less
closely related.
B.3 We will be cared for by our children
If you recognize and repay the debt of gratitude you
have to your parents, apart from gaining personal
virtue, you will also set a good example for your own
children — and they in turn will want to take care of
you when you become feeble in your old age.
B.4 Richness of heart helps meditation progress
Many people meditate for many years without being
able to make any progress — sometimes their mind has
a continuous feeling of "dryness". However, if upon
learning about the debt of gratitude they have to their
parents, they take steps to repay it, it often creates a
"richness" of mind which allows them to progress
again in their meditation.
Cl Why must we have gratitude in our lives?
We didn't get where we are today entirely by our own
efforts. We are the result of considerable investment of
food, care, protection, training and teaching by others.
All these resources have come to us through the pure
intentions of others in society— intentions without
which our civilization would soon collapse. It is not that
people have helped us because they want something
from us in return, but if we, who have been on the
receiving end of such altruism, are able to appreciate,
return or praise the favours they have done us, it will
help to create an atmosphere of "give and take" in soci-
ety instead of deterioration into "every man to
himself'.The appreciation of good deeds is very
important to Buddhist culture and cherishing our
parents is our first and most fundamental opportunity to
express gratitude.
C2 Theories of non-gratitude to parents
Where sons and daughters neglect their parents, often it
is not intentional, but because of having received
influence from some of the theories rife in our society,
none of which are entirely true:
I. Selfish Genes: Some people think that the only rea-
son that parents are kind to their children is that they
want to see their character and genes passed down to
the next generation. This theory has even led to a
genetic theory called `The Selfish Gene' (Dawkins) by
which it is proposed that man is nothing more than a
mechanism by which genes replicate themselves! In
such a case, parents don't show kindness to their
children out of compassion but out of the selfish desire
to propagate their own genes. If such a theory were
really true, if you were walking down the street with
four brothers who were all identical twins with at least
half of the same genes as you have then you would
rather that yourself were eaten by a monster in order to
protect the greater part of your genes depending on the
safety of your three brothers. Such theories have their
limitations because they cannot explain why such traits
as homosexuality which hamper the replication of
genes might grow and spread in the population. The
practical outcome of this theory is that instead of
thinking to repay their parents for all the good things
they have received, they think that they are bringing
their parents fulfilment by bringing up grandchildren
for their parents! This is logic equivalent to borrowing
money from a bank to open a new business and paying
back the loan to your customers! Instead of thinking
how best to look after their poor parents, most children
spend their time thinking how best to get themselves a
boyfriend or girlfriend to look after for the rest of their
lives instead.
2. Hereditary Sin: Some philosophies of life such as
those advocated by the Unification Church (Moonism)
go further to suggest that all the bad things in our life
are passed down to us by our parents and therefore only
be abandoning your parents and marrying into their
religion can you escape from sin. Such thinking has led
to many broken families and accusations of kidnapping
and brainwashing.
EFTA00286611
3. Patricide Cults: Some philosophies of life such as
those found in some African tribes are even more
destructive for the family. Only a boy who is brave
enough to kill his own father is eligable to become the
chief of the tribe because it is taken that only such a
person is cruel and brave enough to lead a tribe.
Although our thoughts about our parents might not be
so serious as some of the theories described above
sometimes we find it hard to really comprehend how
much our parents have done for us. Superficially we
think that the good our parents have done for us is easy
to describe but in fact we don't usually don't look very
deep. Many people are confined as to how the debt of
gratitude to our parents could possibly be as large. Just
thinking of how they have brought us up and how they
have fed and schooled us surely could not add up to
such a large debt. However we should try our best to
look for that goodness, because if you can't see the
good in other people who have done so much for you,
don't expect to be able to see any of the good or
positive things that arise in yourself as a result of your
meditation.
C.3 How a Child is indebted to his parents
Of all the people in the world there is no-one closer to
us than our own mother and father. Why should we
choose our parents as subject to our own good deeds
before thinking of others? Our parents are those to
whom wehave one of the largest debts of gratitude. We
can choose whether or not we have a spouse or
children, but all of us have parents of whom we must
take care. All through our childhood we have been in
debt to them and even when adult that debt is no less
than it was when we were young. But how many
children go to school thinking to study their hardest, do
their best to pick up skills so that they can get a job to
pay their parents back for their kindness as soon as they
complete their education? As soon as they get their first
job how many think of using thier first wage to buy a
present as a token of gratitude for thier parents and how
many buy lipstick instead?
C3.I Before conception
If we look at the root meaning of the word 'parent' it means
'one who brings forth their offspring'. Thus our parents are
responsible for having given us the gift of life. Some parents
are a mother or a father to their children. Even if they wait
until their child is born and then abandon it — i.e they give
rise to children but don't bring them up -
they have still
given the child the most valuable thing it has — its own life.
Parents serve as physical mold. A mold increases a material's
value (see Blessing Nine 5E.2). In a similar sense, the birth of
all animals in the world depends on the parents as their
physical mold.
We are overwhelmingly indebted to our parents for their
genes that give us our healthy physical shape. If our parents
were those who didn't take good care of their own health then
we might have been bom handicapped physically. But as
many of us are in good health, today, with strong physical
bodies, if we were to have no gratitude to our parents for the
things they have given us, it would show that we are blind to
the good things that people do for us. Even if our parents had
abandoned us at birth and did nothing else to bring us up, we
should already be overwhelmed with the gill of life that they
have given us.
Thus don't go thinking that to be born human is an
automatic entitlement. Even in your own house, the
number of people living in the house is still small
compared to the number of worms, mosquitos, ants,
geckos, birds etc. There are maybe a hundred or a
thousand more non-human living beings even in our
own house than there are humans for whom the house
was actually built. This tells us that to be born human is
a difficult thing but to be born as an animal is easy. And
if you were to be born as an animal — what use do you
think you would be to the world?
C3.2 From conception to birth
For the period we spent in the womb, we must mostly
thank our mother but also our father who may have
taken extra care of mother during pregnancy.
Throughout the forty weeks of pregnancy, the mother
needed to take regular medical check-
EFTA00286612
ups. Even though she may not have liked to eat certain
sorts of nutritious diet suitable for her baby's health,
she had to eat those things, nonetheless. Even though
she might have wanted to eat certain sorts of food but
knowing that these things may have been damaging to
her baby, she had to go without them (e.g. avoiding the
temptation of spicy (etc.) foods, drink and cigarettes)
during the pregnancy, wearing loose clothes and having
to leave strenuous work to others.
Not only physically must the mother protect the child
in her womb, but even the serenity of state of mind of
the child in the womb must be protected by avoiding
quarrels, conflict and anxiety.
C.3.3 From Birth to adulthood
A second word used for parents is 'father' or `mother'
which means 'the one who brings up their offspring'.
Thus there are three types of parents — the ones we
have already mentioned who bring forth children but
don't bring them up, those who are step-parents who
bring up the children of others and lastly, those who
both give rise to children and bring them up too. Most
of us find it is easier to comprehend their debt of
gratitude to their parents for the care they have received
from the time they are born to the time they are old
enough to take care of themselves. What do you think is
the time of your life when you are the most vulnerable
and you can do nothing to help yourself? It is not when
you have no money as a student. It is not during a war
or when you are ill. None of these can compare to the
risk which you undenvent on the day you were born.
Normally in the face of danger we would use the
powers we have (physical strength, connections, wealth
or wisdom) to overcome the danger — you are able to
help yourself. However, on the day you were born, if
your parents didn't decide to take you as their child to
bring them up do you think you could survive? Could
you put up a struggle when you don't even have the
strength to open your eyes? Would you have had
connections enough to get you out of trouble when even
your own parents hadn't wanted you? Would you have
had any wealth to buy yourself out of the situation at a
time when you didn't even
have a scrap of cloth to wear? Would you have had the
wisdom to work out solutions to your problems? The
reality of the situation is that we could only survive
because ow parents were kind enough to accept us.
Normally if someone is to adopt a child they would have
to take a long, long time to make that decision. If you were
going to lend some money to someone, you have to have
your conditions and your contracts — but for us there was
only unconditional acceptance. Thus even that moment of
acceptance at the most vulnerable time of ow life is more
than we can easily reimburse.
Even when the child is in the womb, even though they
don't know how the child would turn out, they would
lay down their life to protect the child in their womb.
C3.4 Physical Care
If you compare man with the animals, there is no comparable
animal which takes so long or expends so much effort in the
care of its young. Usually the larger the animal, the longer it
must stay in the womb (gestation period) and the longer it
must rely on the care of its parents after its birth. Even an el-
ephant with its huge size and a gestation period of three years
will only look after a baby elephant for two years. Man
although much smaller in size than any elephant often looks
after his children for twenty years. They have done the job of
protecting us like a guardian angel ever since we were born.
Even after that we expect our parents to organize our
marriages and pass their legacy on to us.
Parents provide food, shelter, clothing, education and
medical care for their children, supporting us in every
way. Parents often have to put themselves at risk or in
debt in order to look after their children. If you find a
woman catching fish or shoplifting, 99 times out of 100
she is doing it only to feed her child — if it was for
herself she would never take such a risk.
C.3.5 Spiritual Care
Keeping us healthy and educated was not the only
responsibility which our parents had to shoulder. Even
our own basis of moral understanding had to come
from our parents. If ow parents had relied
EFTA00286613
always on the saying "do what I say not what I do", by
now we would surely have grown up into hypocrites.
Our parents were an example for us to follow as well as
scolding and punishing us for doing unacceptable
things, keeping an eye on our friends and choosing only
the best books for us to read. Who taught us to speak
and walk? Who taught us all the basic virtues of life
and had the patience to remind us when we were lazy or
forgetful? Parents are a child's first teacher because
they are the first to teach a child his manners and how
to behave.
Even when we are grown up and supposedly responsible
and independent, the generosity and care of our parents
doesn't come to an end but we find that they are always
there to help when we have important questions like that
of marriage and the last thing ow parents do for us before
they die is to pass on their accumulated wealth for us.
These are just a very brief summary of some of the
ways in which we have been helped by our parents.
Even the most tough and insensitive man or woman,
when they become parents manages to find in the
deepest part of their hearts the most tender and
unlimited love for their own children and because of the
purity of parental intention which fathers and mothers
manage to find, ther people of old used to say you don't
need to go any further than your own house in order to
find an object of worship.
C4 Practical recollections to appreciate your debt of
gratitude
According to the SilgalovAda Sutta (D.iii.180), the
practicality of realizing one's debt of gratitude to one's
parents can be effected by habitually reflecting:
I. "I have been supported by my parents — I will
support them in turn" (such a recollection helps the
cultivation of Right View)
2. "I will do their work for them" (such a recollection
helps the cultivation of patience, responsibility,
knowledge and ability)
3. "I will keep up the honour and traditions of the
family"
4."I will make myself worthy of the family legacy"
(such a recollection helps one to extricate one
self from the Six Roads to Ruin)
5. "I will make offerings, dedicating merit to them after
their death" (such a recollection helps the cultivation of
Right View and responsibility)
Such recollections will not come naturally to any child
who has not
been raised with self-discipline,
responsibility and Right View. Thus the gratitude a
child has is part of a reciprocal relationship a parent has
with their children — a subject explored in more depth
in Blessing Twelve (0.3).
OUR PARENTS
D.l Expectations of Parents
Poor parents would rather put themselves in debt than
to see their own children suffer. Considering seemingly
little things like carefully and rationally will allow us to
see through to the magnitude of the debt of gratitude we
own our parents. Realizing how good one's parents are
is a simple but necessary precursor to the repayment of
gratitude to our parents — because it is not
immediately obvious or easy to understand for every
person.
There was once a man who, together with his brothers
and sisters, had been looking after their mother
throughout a constant period of two years nursing her
and paying for her kidney transfusions at a cost of
20,000 per month. Such a cost was certainly quite
difficult for all the brothers and sisters to bear, but if
they could not pay then surely their mother would die.
Because the mother was also suffering from
mental-disease, as soon as she was stronger after the
transfusion, she would complain continuously
disturbing the sons and daughters looking after her in
the middle of the night. Looking after the mother was
an ordeal for everyone concerned and at the end of two
years, the thought occurred to all the brothers and
sisters that two years was enough. They thought that all
their efforts were surely enough to repay their debt of
gratitude to their mother. In actual fact, if their mother
had thought the same thing of her sick sons and
daughters early on in life then surely none of them
would have survived to the present day. Their mother
would have used the last of her earnings to
EFTA00286614
see her children well again and even have gone into
debt rather than seeing her children suffer.
All parents have only five expectations of their children
(in keeping with the five recollections of the
SiigalovAda
Sutta
mentioned in
the
previous
paragraph) — all of which point to ways in which
children can handle the debt of gratitude they owe to
their parents:
I. that their children will look after them in their old
age;
2. that their children will perpetuate the good work for
society they have already started;
3. that their children will carry on the good name of the
family;
4. that their children will use the family wealth in a
responsible way
5. when they pass away their children will perform
funeral rites and continue to dedicate the positivity of
good deeds for their parents .
The extent to which a child manages to do all five of
these things varies from person to person — but in
general you can categorize children into three types:
I. The child whose virtue exceeds that of his parents
and who brings more prosperity to the family as during
the time of his parents [abhijAtaputta]
2. The child whose virtue equals that of his parents and
who brings the same degree of prosperity to the family
as was brought during the time of his parents
[anujAtaputta]
3. The child whose virtue is less than that of his parents
and who brings less prosperity to the family than during
the time of his parent [avajAtaputta]
D.2 Service
Repaying to our parents' goodness through service is
divided into two parts:
I. Service when they are still alive: When they are still
alive help them in their daily chores. look after them
when they are old, make sure that they are well fed, and
care for them when they are not well. If they still have
debts when they are in
their old age then try to pay these debts off before
they die. Serve them by making life more convenient
(e.g. building an extra toilet for aged parent)
2. Service after their death: When they pass away host
their funeral and habitually offer the positivity you
generate as the result of your meditation for their
benefit: (even if we transfer merit to them and they are
unable to accept it we have still done ow duty to the
best of ow ability like giving a car to someone who
cannot use it or cannot use it immediately)
D.2.I While parents alive
D.2.1.I Honour
In order to show your respect for the pure intention which our
parents have always shown us it is fitting to offer clothing,
housing or medicine. Sometimes we might give a gilt to our
parents, not out of necessity, but in order to honour our
parents. Sometimes out of their goodwill for us aged parents
or old people will seem to be very fussy or critical because
they have a lot of life experience (more than us). Sometimes
they are really too fussy, but you need to be able to tolerate
what they are saying and think that they still have that
goodwill for you. If we are patient, we can learn a lot from
their experiences. Also there may be some things we should
keep to ourselves instead of burdening old parents. Old
people are weak and cannot do much for themselves. Only
their mouth is in good working order
— so be patient when old people talk a lot.
D.2.I.2 Protection
Protect your parents from things that you know annoy
them or tire them. If you can alleviate stressful duties
which might fall upon your parents, you can help them
to enjoy the last years of their life more and preserve
their dignity.
D.2.I.3 Spiritual IVays of Repayment
All the above we are not enough to repay our debt of
gratitude in all the ways above then does that mean that
we have no way of repaying our gratitude? In fact the
way which it is possible to repay our debt is though
Internal support' by giving them heaven as their
afterlife destination.
EFTA00286615
I. inspiring them to faith in the Triple Gem and nur-
ture them further to;
2. be generous and keep a baseline of
thcpalifiade them to listen to spiritual teachings: Some
old parents are unable to go to a place where they can
hear spiritual teachings for themselves but you can help
the situation by reading them spiritual books to them or
record a cassette of teaching for them to hear
4. teach them how to meditate
S. ordaining to pay debt of gratitude: In Thai culture
especially, there is a tradition for sons to ordain
temporarily at the age of twenty in order that the
parents may gain merit from organizing their
ordination. It is said that the sponsor of an ordination
ceremony will gain half of the merit of the ordinand
himself, therefore, as a dutiful son, finding the
opportunity to ordain in order to repay one's debt of
gratitude to one's parents, is an important part of
cultivating the eleventh blessing.
D.2.2 When parents have already passed away
Even if your parents have already passed away, your
duty as a grateful son or daughter is not finished. Apart
from taking responsibility for organizing a fitting
funeral, Buddhist sons and daughters will do
meritorious deeds regularly and transfer the merit from
the deeds for the benefit of their deceased parents.
heir or will not make the earth will not laugh or cry.
Thus if you want to announce to the world the goodness
of your parents, you don't need to shout about it. The
goodness of your parents will shine through your own
behaviour, manners, the way you speak without you
even having to mention your parents. We represent our
parents and the way they have brought us up. We are
their flesh and blood. Our mannerisms also come from
our upbringing. That is why our behaviour is the most
vivid way of announcing their goodness. It is not in
their biography that we hand out at their funeral, but
rather by our own behaviour which matters. Everyone
loves their parents. Having this love one should an-
nounce their goodness through our good behaviour
starting while they are still alive. In doing so, we will
make them very happy. This is more important than
writing their goodness in their biography which is of
minute importance. It doesn't matter whether we
intentionally want to announce our parents, goodness
through our behaviour or not. Our actions speakfor
themselves. It is up to us to create a good name for
them through our behaviour. In doing so we make
ourselves worthy to receive our parents' legacy.
BrdialikDSiigalovAda Sutta we learn that a child has
duties towards his parents and parents have duties
towards their children (see detail Blessing Twelve
E. ANNOUNCING THE GOODNESS OF OUR PARE ilr
en will fulfil their side of the bargain and in doing
. In the ideal world, both the parents and the
Some people mistakenly think that a large family is
so, no danger will grow up in the relationship or for
interchangeable with a family of good repute. Thus they
have many, many children thinking that in this way
society at large — there will be happiness and
prosperity both for parent, child and society at large.
they will bring happiness to their own parents.
However, whether one has an heir or not is not
something that will make your parents or anyone else in
the world laugh or cry. What is better — to have a
hundred sons and daughters who do nothing to better
the family reputation, or to work yourself bringing fame
and fortune to the family yourself by the good and
beneficial things you do for the rest of society — a
person who is so good that their love is not limited to
just a few sons and daughters but to the whole of the
world (a parent to the whole of the world). Whether you
have an
If the child fulfils their duty according to Blessing
Eleven but the parent doesn't fulfil their duty according
to Blessing Twelve, harm will come to the parents and
eventually to the child and society as well. There are
some exceptional cases where a child has been so
mistreated at the hands of his own parents that he or she
finds it near impossible to imagine anything good about
their parents. In such a case, we must remind ourselves
that even if our parents abandon us at birth, we still
have a huge
EFTA00286616
debt of gratitude to them for giving us our physical
form as a human. In a case where one has been beaten
or abused by one's parents, it is important to make a
separation between the good things they have done to
you and the bad. We must repay ow debt of gratitude
for the good things and do our best to forgive the bad
things, without mixing them up or thinking that one
cancels out the other. Sometimes a dutiful son or
daughter knows that giving their parents money will
only fuel them into doing irresponsible things (like
gambling) — in such cases, they should still be
supported, but the support should be in the form of food
or clothing that they cannot change into money. Such
parents should be treated like a patient who is ill and
sometimes can not be given what they crave for — but
our parents should never be insulted by us because of
their weaknesses.
If the parents fulfil their duty according to Blessing
Twelve, but the child does not fulfil their duty according
to Blessing Eleven, harm will come to the child and
eventually to the parents and society as well.
If the child doesn't do their duty according to Blessing
Eleven and the parents don't fulfil their duty according
to Blessing Twelve, immediate harm will come to both
and to society too.
G.1 Metaphor: Parents as God [Brahma]
Our parents have been compared to ow "God" or
"Brahma" because they exhibit towards us all the
underlying virtues exhibited by a God, i.e. the four
Divine Abidings [brahmavihAra]:
1. loving-kindness [mettA]: parents have the limitless
wish that their children should remove themselves
from suffering in every respect.
2. compassion [karunA]: the parents make every effort
to diminish the suffering of their children, never
neglecting their child
3. sympathetic joy [muditA]: whenever the child
experiences success or happiness, the parents are
sincerely happy on their child's part
4. equanimity [upekkhA]: when the child has their own
family and is able to look after its own affairs, the
parents no longer interfere. If the chil
dren make mistakes, the parents refrain from saying
"I told you so", but give their opinion when asked
for it.
G.2 Metaphor: Parents as one's first Guardian Angel
The parents are the first people known to the child to
offer their protection to the child in every way
G.3 Metaphor: Parents as First Teacher
The parents are the first people known to the child to
teach and train the child, whether it be how to walk or
talk or how to cultivate good manners.
G.4 Metaphor: Parents as Arahant
The parents are as the child's arahant because they
have four qualities:
I. They bring the child great benefit: The parents fulfil
the challenging duty of caring for the child in every
way — something it would be hard to find anyone else
to do in their place.
2. They command respect but are endearing: protecting
the child from all dangers, they also manage to bring
gentle warmth to the child's life.
3. They are the child's field of merit: They have com-
pletely pure intentions towards their children, making
them a worthy object for the child's merit-making
4. They are worthy of being bowed to: a child should
express his respect for his parents by bowing or
saluting them.
G.5 Metaphor: Gold plate v.s Solid Gold
Just as you can tell the difference between a gold-plated
object and one that is solid gold by passing it through a
flame, you can tell whether someone is truly virtuous
by whether or not he cherishes his parents.
G.6 Proverb: Carrying one's parents on one's
shoulders for 100 years
The Buddha taught that even if we were to carry our
parents, one on each shoulder, for one hundred years,
spoon-feeding them and allowing them to urinate and
defecate on us, it would still be insufficient fully to
repay our debt of gratitude to our parents.
EFTA00286617
6.7 Proverb: A skyful of parental praise
If we were to use Mount Sumeru as our pen and all the
water of the ocean as ow ink, even if we were to write
the virtues of ow parents in the sky until there were no
place left to write, the mountain were worn down and
the seawater dry, we would still not have reached an
end of our parents virtues.
G.8 Er. The monk who went on almsround for his
parents(MAtuposaka Sutta SA.181)
Normally when a monk has gathered food on his
almsround, he must take his meal from that food first
before passing the remainder on to any lay supporters.
In the time of the Buddha there was a monk whose
parents were so poor they had nothing to eat. The monk
went on almsround and gave the parents first choice of
the food he managed to gather. Later, he was criticized
by other monks who reported his behaviour to the
Buddha. The Buddha said that what the monk had done
was correct and that in the case a monk's parents
needed food from his almsround, they may be served
first and the monk himself take the remainder — an
exception to the rule in keeping with the debt of grati-
tude even a monk should repay to his parents.
G.9 Er. KaccAni JAtaka (1.417)
After his father's death, a young man devoted himself
entirely to his mother, until the latter, much against his
will, brought him a wife. The wife plotted to estrange
mother and son, and the old woman eventually had to
leave the house. Having given birth to a son, the wife,
went about saying that if the mother-in-law had been
with her, such a blessing would have been impossible.
When the old woman heard of this, she felt that such
words showed that Dhamma must be dead. The woman
went to a ceremony and started to perform a rite in the
memory of the dead `Dhamma'. Sakka's throne became
heated and hearing her story used his powers to
reconcile the old
woman
with
her son and
daughter-in-law.
The story was related to a young man of SAvatthE who
looked after his aged mother until his wife came. The
wife helped to look after her mother-inlaw at first, but
later grew jealous of her husband's
love for his mother and contrived to make the son angry
with his mother. Finally she asked the man to choose
between herself and his mother. The young man,
without hesitation stood up for his mother and the wife,
realizing her folly, mended her ways.
J.iii.422ff.
G.10 Ex. The Begging Bowl (traditional)
Once upon a time, there was a family where the mother and
father were already old. The only son loved his father and
mother and took good care of them running errands and
helping in the house throughout his childhood. Then the son
came of age got married and had his own children. Unfortu-
nately, as soon as he got married he found that his wife's love
for his old parents was far less titan his own. His wife chided
him,"Don't you love your own children? Looking after your
parents wastes time that could be better spent earning a good
wage
— let your parents look after themselves."At first he
took no notice of his wife, but since his wife would
complain and insist on this matter every day, eventually
he forgot his debt of gratitude to his parents. He
purchased a pair of clay bowls for his parents and
instructed them, "Mother and father, from now on you
must beg for a living," and went about earning his own
living as best he could. The son's own children grew up
to the age of five or six.
One day their father came home from work to find his
children decorating a coconut shell with the finest of
ornaments. He asked, "What do you think you're doing
with that coconut shell?" The children said said, "We're
getting a begging bowl ready for you — to help you
when you get too old to work!" Seeing his own children
with the coconut shell, the father realized his own
ingratitude and from that day forth invited his old
parents to stay in his own home and looked after them
in the best of comfort until the end of their days. This
illustrates how powerful the parent's influence on his
child and shows that the child's standard of good deeds
comes directly from his parent's example. The Lord
Buddha taught that the debt of gratitude we owe to ow
parents is so great that it would
EFTA00286618
be hard to repay that debt of gratitude within a single
life-time. Thus it is one of the duties outlined inthe
SilgalovAda Sutta and the Malgala Sutta to cherish our
own parents especially in old age. By doing this we not
only repay our endebtedness to ow parents for giving
us life — but we strengthen the structure of society to
make it free from alienation especially for the senior
citizens in society some of whom receive more comfort
from their pet cats and dogs these days, than they do
from their own sons and daughters.
G.11 Et Even Buddha must care for his parents
Even the Buddha himself devoted considerable time and
effort to repaying the debt of gratitude he had to his
parents. The Buddha spent the whole of one
rainy-season retreat in TavatiOsa Heaven, through the
might of his mental powers, in order to teach his late
mother the whole of the Abhidhamma. His mother
Queen MAyA had passed away only seven days after
the birth of Prince Siddhartha.
G.12 Et The Abandoned Brahmin
Once, there lived in SAvatthE an old brahmin who was
extremely rich. He had four sons and when each of the
sons got married, he gave him a share of his wealth.
Then, he gave away half of his remaining property to
them. Later, his wife died. His sons came to him and
looked after him very well and they were very loving
and affectionate to him. During the course of time,
somehow they influenced him to give them the other
half of the remaining property. Thus, he was left
penniless. First he went to stay with his eldest son.
After a few days, the daughter-in-law said to him, 'Did
you give any extra wealth to your eldest son? Don't you
know the way to the house of your other sons?' Hearing
this, the old brahmin got very angry and left the eldest
son's house for the house of his second son. The same
remarks were made by the wife of his second son and
the old man went to the house of his third son and fi-
nally to the house of the fourth and youngest. Thus, the
old man was left destitute and taking a staff and a bowl
he went to the Buddha for pro
tection and advice. At the monastery, the brahmin told
the Buddha how his sons had mistreated him. The
Enlightened One taught him some verses and advised
him to recite them wherever there was a large gathering
of people. The gist of the verses was as follows:
'My four foolish sons are like ogres. They call me
`father, father' but the words come only out of their
mouths and not from their hearts. They are
deceitful and scheming. Taking the advice of their
wives they have driven me out of their houses. So,
now I have been reduced to begging. Those sons
are of less service to me than this staff of mine.'
When the appointed day came for the brahmins of SAvatthE to
hold their meeting and knowing that his sons would be there, the
old brahmin also attended the meeting. Now at that time, the pre-
vailing law dictated that -whoever ill-treats his mother or father
and does not support or look after them shall be punished". Many
people in the crowd, on hearing the verses recited by the old
brahmin, went wild with rage at the ungrateful sons and
threatened them for neglecting their father. Then the sons realised
their mistakes and knelt down at the feet of their father and asked
for pardon. They also promised that from that day forth, they
would look after him properly and would respect, love and
honour him. They also warned their wives to look after their
father well. Each of the sons gave him proper food and clothing.
Thus the brahmin became healthier. So, he went to the Buddha
and humbly requested him to accept two food-trays out of the
four he was receiving every day from his sons. One day, the
eldest son invited the Buddha to his house for almsfood. After the
meal, the Buddha gave a discourse on the benefits to be gained by
looking after one's parents.
The Buddha related to themthe story of the elephant
called Dhanapala, who looked after his parents.
Dhanapala when captured pined for the parents who
were left in the forest.
DhammapadaEEhakathA, XXIII: 3
EFTA00286619
G.13 Orphan with a Debt to Pay (traditional)
There was once a woman of the streets who was with child. By
profession she knew that if the child was born a boy, she would
be unable to keep him. Her anxiety only increased day-by-day
until at the end of nine months, her fears were realized. The new-
born babe was a boy. Many times she took the baby to the river's
edge with the full intention to drown him and finish the whole
business, but with tears in her eyes from having borne him in her
womb for so long, she could not bring herself todo it. At the same
time, she could not keep the child or else she would destroy her
livelihood. Shc left him in a bundle by the roadside with the
thought that there might be some chance of a compassionate
passer-by seeing the child and adopting him. The first passer-by
that morning was the abbot from the local temple on his
almsround. He spotted the baby and afraid that he starve, took
him back to the temple. The abbot guessed how the baby had
come to be there but in the absence of anyone coming to claim
him back, provided all the food, shelter, clothing and education
the child needed to grow-up to teenage. The boy could run and
play with the other children and do everything expected of him
but he had a chip on his shoulder and would run and hide if any of
the others teased him for not having a mother and father. The boy
would blame his unseen parents for the predicament in which he
found himself. One day the abbot heard the boy complaining out
loud about the parents who had abandoned him. The abbot
thought, - the time has come to talk to this boy about his life."
"If someone were to give you a dollar, would you curse
him?" the abbot asked the boy.
"Of course not," replied the boy, "I should bow to that
person, or at least thank him and I would not forget my
gratitude to him!"
"And if someone were to come along and offer you a
dollar for your life would you take it?"
"Of course I wouldn't," replied the boy indignantly."Do
you think that's all my life is worth?"
"Ten dollars then?"
"You must be joking!" The abbot raised the sum to a
hundred, a thousand, ten-thousand, a hundred-thousand
and a million dollars, but the boy would not part with his
life. Asked why, the boy replied, "even a million dollars is
useless if you have no life left to spend it."
"Well, what about if someone were to come along and
offer you a dollar to cut off your right arm? Would you
take it?'
"Of course I wouldn't," replied the boy indignantly."Do
you think that's all the integrity of my body is worth?'
"Ten dollars then?'
"Daylight robbery!"
The abbot raised the sum to a hundred, a thousand,
ten-thousand, a hundred-thousand and a million dollars,
but the boy would not part with his right arm. "Don't you
want to be a millionaire?" asked the abbot. The boy
said,"even a million dollars is no substitute for the loss of
one's physical integrity."
"And if someone were to come along and offer you a
dollar to cut off your little finger? Would you take it?"
"Of course I wouldn't," replied the boy indignantly."
Do you think you can put a price on part of the human
body?"
"Ten dollars then?'
"Forget it!" The abbot raised the sum to a hundred, a
thousand, ten-thousand, a hundred-thousand and a million
dollars, but the boy would not part with his little finger.
Asked why, the boy said that even a million dollars could
not replace the thing most precious to him — a healthy,
human body.
"Just now you said that if someone gave you a dollar,
you would thank him, bow to him and never forget your
gratitude to him — yet your parents have given you
your healthy, human body free, even the little finger of
which you would not part with for a million dollars —
how come you sit here cursing them for not having
given you more?"
EFTA00286620
Blessing Twelve:
Raising our children
A. Introduction
A.I The Harm of Bad Parental Upbringing
The SiigalovAda Sutta teaches us to develop respect for
human dignity towards ourselves, towards others and
towards a fair economic system in general. Sometimes
we have to work on ourselves throughout our lives to
develop these qualities, but for sure, the seeds of these
qualities for every "global being" need to be planted by
the parents during childhood as part of that child's
upbringing. If the child is neglected when growing up,
they will grow up to lack any sense of responsibility
for:
I. their own human dignity
2. the human dignity of others
3. the human dignity underlying the economics of
society at large
The catastrophe brought to society by such parental
neglect can be enlarged asfollows:
I. lacking responsibility for their own human dignity
means: if the parents lack self-discipline and don't
fulfil the minimal duties laid down by the Buddha, the
first signs of harm will be that their children lack any
sense of responsibility for their own human dignity —
this being expressed in four different ways by the
child's behaviour:
I. False View: the child will not know the difference
between virtue and evil, good and bad, appropriate
and inappropriate and therefore will have no shame
of evil [hiri] or fear of the
consequences of evil;
2. Lack of aim in life: the child will have no spiritual
aim in life, and therefore will tend to material
extravagence and selfishness. Such a person will
take every opportunity to do evil deeds that their
circumstances and needs demand;
3. Lack of health and hygene: the child will be in-
competent in looking after their own health, perhaps
being promiscuous, thereby destroying their own
health and human endowments;
4. Lack of interest in self-development: Because of
having no clear aim in life or perhaps because of bad
health, the child will be discouraged from any efforts
to study either worldly or spiritual knowledge. As a
result they become even more entrenched in False
View and may bring catastrophe to society —
perhaps going even so far as to betray their own
country.
2. lacking responsibility for the human dignity of oth-
ers: if the parents lack self-discipline and don't fulfil
their own duties, the second sign of harm will be that
their children lack any sense of responsibility for the
human dignity of others sharing society— this being
expressed in three different ways by the child's
behaviour:
I. Bias: Having perhaps been on the receiving end
of parental bias, when older and finding themselves
in positions of responsibility, the
EFTA00286621
child's tendency to bias in decision-making,
because of greed, hatred, delusion or fear, may do
important damage to others in society;
2. Narrow-minded and selfish: If the child grows up
into someone narrow-minded and selfish, they might
be alienated in society for the rest of their life
because no-one wants to associate with them.
3. Lacks any signs of altruism: Having perhaps not
had any parental training in altruism, when coming
in contact with a wider society, when the child's
patience is tried, they might lose control of
themselves, expressing themselves in a rude or
violent way.
3. lacking responsibility for self-discipline (economic
fairness): if the parents lack self-discipline and don't fulfil
their own duties, the second sign of harm will be that their
children lack any sense of responsibility for self-discipline
(economicfaimess) — this being expressed in three differ-
ent ways by the child's behaviour:
1. Frivolous with money: not seeing the value of
money, and lacking restraint in expenditure, when a
child is no longer able to ask money from their
parents, they look for new sources of income, the
easiest of which are usually those concerned with the
Six Roads to Ruin.
2. Addicted to the Six Roads to Ruin
3. Unable to uphold the family name: Even while
still young, the badly-raised child can destroy the
family name and when older, they will be unable to
act as a steward for the family fortune.
In conclusion it can be said that two major problems
stem from bad upbringingof children:
1. Problems of Juvenile Delinquency: Problems con-
cerning young people in every country are becoming
increasingly serious and aggressive with every year that
passes. In the olden days, the problems of young people
would affect only those of age fifteen upwards, but now
the problems are evident from primary school upwards.
2. Parental Problems: Neglect of parental duties would
appear to hold a large stake in the problems of young
people — when parents lack the
self-discipline to fulfil their own duties, it is no
surprise that their children have no self-discipline
either and lack any sense of responsibility for human
dignity. Juvenile delinquency starts in the home and
goes on to exacerbate all other sorts of social
problems. Most people fail to see the connection
between the problems, but the Lord Buddha
recognized the importance of the parental duty in
bringing up their children properly — and in the
SilgalovAda Sutta, accordingly put the parents in the
most prestigious Eastern Quarter (where the sun
rises) as a reminder of the importance of this
relationship. The implication of the Buddha's
teaching is that anyone unwilling or unable to fulfil
the duties of a good parent according to the
Buddha's teaching, should consider themselves too
immature to marry or have a family — because if
they go ahead and have a family while still unable to
be a good parent, they are sowing the seeds of im-
mediate social catastrophe.
Realizing the seriousness of the duties upon the
shoulders of any parent, it is obvious that we must take
care in studying exactly how the Buddha taught parents
to raise their children and the means by which these can
be achieved. In doing so,we can guard against
becoming the sort of parents who look back on what
they have achieved during their life and feel nothing but
regret — because there is nothing more heartbreaking
than having brought up a child who makes a mess out
of their own life, life of others or of society at large.
A.2 The True Meaning of the Word 'Child'
The Pali word for 'child' is 'putt'''. This word is still
found in some European languages and usually means a
sort of 'cherub'. However, if you look a the root of the
word, it doesn't just mean 'child' but also 'unstained',
'pure' or 'fulfilling'. Thus the real meaning of a child is to
be the one who purifies the family name. The word also
means the one who brings joy to the heart of his parents.
The child we bring up may be of our own flesh or
blood, or the child may be adopted — the Buddha
categorized children according to their origins:
EFTA00286622
I. ones born of our own flesh [atraja]
2. ones born on ow property [khettaja]
3. adopted children given to us by others [dinnaka]
4. our students [antevAsika] KaEEhahAri JAtaka
(J.i. 35)
— but it makes no difference to the thoroughness with
which we must practice our parental duties towards them.
It is implied that no matter how the child in our care
comes to us, we must still practice and fulfil our parental
duties towards them.
Some people who still have a lot of defilements want to
have a lot of children. Luang Phaw Wat Paknam said
that if you want to have a lot of children who are full of
virtue you should ordain as a monk because you will
have many students as your children. If you have
children of your own flesh and blood who turn out
troublesome they you have to put up with looking after
them the whole of your life. However, if they are your
students and they are troublesome at least you can make
your selection.You can say goodbye to the troublemak-
ers and choose the good ones. Look at the Buddha's
example — even after 2,500 years after his ParinibbAna
there are still children of the Buddha being born today.
'Would be' parents must prepare themselves, both
inworldly and spiritual ways so they are ready to bring
a good child into the world and bring him up to be a
good person. The parent needs to prepare themselves
for three different stages bringing a good child into the
world:
I. before conception
2. from conception to birth
3. from birth to adulthood
The task is not easy — really it can be considered a
full-time job — but the benefits of success will be the
lifelong pride of the parents.
As already mentioned, 'good child' from the parents'
point of view, covers abroad range of meanings: in
brief, possessing all sorts of virtues, good physique and
sound mind. However, it is hard to find a person perfect
in every sense of the word.
Generally, a child held to be good, will have three
qualities; they will be brainy; well-behaved (i.e. be able
to follow the Precepts), and good hearted (i.e. generous
and compassionate). These are the basis of a child's
virtue. Any other goodness in which the parent can
train their child, are all well and good and will add to
the parents' pride in their child.
B. I Before Conception
The parent must be both physically and mentally
prepared to bring a good child into the world. For
Buddhists, physical preparation alone is not sufficient
because our human being consists not only of a body,
but also of a mind: necessitating careful spiritual
preparation
for
parents. The
knowledge which
Buddhism gives to `would be' parents goes far beyond
the frontiers of even modem medical science.
According to Buddhist Teachings, each and every
creature has their own individual kamma (i.e. store-
house of potential results of good and bad deeds
performed in the past). According to the Buddhist
proverb (S.i.227):
YAdisaO vappate bEjaO
TAdisaO harate phalaO
KalyAAakArE kalyAAaO
PApakArE ca pApakaO
One reaps the fruit from the (type of) seed
one sows: lovely out comes from lovely ac
tions, ugly outcomes from ugly actions.
Buddhist teachings also show that those who have done
good deeds will be reborn in heaven after dying from
the human realm, and when he is reborn in the human
realm, he will be born to wealthy and morally proper
parents. A person who has performed a lesser amount
of merit, when being reborn into the human realm, will
be born to a less wealthy or even poor family,
according to the degree of his merit. The being always
carries its past merits with it, even between births, and
this merit has a determining effect on who its next
parents will be. A being awaiting rebirth into the human
realm will be born to parents with a level of merit equal
to its own. It cannot be born to parents whose merit is
greater or less than its own. Therefore, in order to bring
a child into the world that is good, a
EFTA00286623
'would be' parent must perform as many meritorious
deeds as possible, by making donations, keeping the
Five Precepts and, most importantly, by meditating
regularly. The result of such meritorious action will be
to attract a being with a good level of merit to be born
into their family. By these very actions, a 'would be'
parent prepares themself spiritually, ready to be a good
father or mother — pure in body, speech and mind,
beautified by the wisdom of meditation and ready to
welcome the birth of a child perfect in personality and
Dhamma.
In the time of Luang Phaw Wat Paknam there was a merchant
who came to Luang Phaw Wat Paknam complaining that for
many years he had being trying to have a child without
success. Luang Phaw Wat Paknam asked him what sort of
child he wanted. Ile said he wanted a good and virtuous child
who was rich. Ile wanted a handsome child too. Luang Phaw
Wat Paknam said that whatever you want your child to turn
out like you have to make yourself as good as you want your
child to be first — like a blueprint. Then he meditated to see
which angel was about to run out of subtle merit (and die from
heaven) who had those son of characteristics and would
suggest which mother and father had a matching level of merit
to be their new parents. If soldiers wanted a brave child then
Luang Phaw \Vat Paknam would give them the same advice to
make themselves brave first of all.
Some people might wonder why in some cases good
children seem to be born to parents who are horrible
and cruel and why good parents sometimes have
horrible childre
[truncated]